A COMMENTARIE ON THE WHOLE EPISTLE TO THE HEBREVVES.

By M. IOHN CALVIN. TRANSLATED OVT OF FRENCH.

The lawe was giuen by Moses, but grace and truth came by Iesus Christ. Iohn 1.17.

Imprinted at London by FELIX KINGSTON, for Arthur Iohnson, and are to be sold at his shop neere the great North doore of Pauls, at the signe of the white Horse. 1605.

TO THE RIGHT HONOVRABLE ROBERT EARLE OF SALISBVRIE, VICOVNT Cranbourne, Baron of Essendon, Principall Secreta­rie to the Kings most excellent Maiestie, Ma­ster of the Court of Wardes and Liue­ries, and one of his Highnesse most Honourable Pri­uie Counsell.

Grace and peace be multiplied.

RIght Honourable, such hath beene the singular care and fatherly proui­dence of God ouer his church in these last times: that according to his own most gratious promise (through the meanes of preaching and writing) know­ledge hath ouerflowed in all places, Esai, 11.9. as the waters that couer the sea. Hence it is come to passe, that euen this nation also, albeit vtterly vnworthy to receiue so much as [...]

TO THE READER.

DEare Christian Reader, among the many helpes wherewith God hath furnished thee for the furtherance of thy godly Meditations and spi­ritual growth in Christ, I pray thee accept of this amongst the rest; of which (if I may so speake) thou hast beene too long vnfurnished. Diuers good and godly men haue laboured, some by their own wri­tings, and some againe by translating the workes of others, to store thee with Sermons and Expositions in English, vp­on all the bookes of the New Testament, this Epistle to the Hebrewes onely excepted: which lacke, rather than it should be vnsupplied, hath caused me (the vnfittest I confesse of many thousands) to vndertake the translation of the Com­mentarie ensuing: which beeing finished, I haue beene bolde (for thy benefit Christian Reader) now to publish. Hoping therefore of thy friendly allowance and acceptance of these my poore indeauours: I beseech thee, if thou reapest that be­nefit thereby, which I heartily wish thou maist, to giue God the praise, and to helpe me with thy praiers. Thus commen­ding thee and thy studies to the grace of God, I bidde thee farewell.

Thine euer in Christ, C. C.

THE ARGVMENT ON THE EPISTLE TO THE HEBREWS.

THere haue beene diuers opinions in times past, not onely touching the Au­thors name of this Epistle: but also e­uen the Epistle it self hath bin receiued with much adoe; and that very lately amongst them of the Latine churches. They had it in suspition, as if it fauou­red the error of Nouatus, touching the deniall of pardon vnto those which fell backe againe into sinne: but when we shall come to those places where this matter is spoken of, we will shewe that this their sus­pition was causelesse. Nowe for mine owne part, I doe receiue it without any difficultie at all amongst the Apostolicall Epistles; and doe make no doubt but that it came to passe by the craft and subtiltie of the Diuell, that there haue beene some heretofore which haue indeauoured to out off this Epistle from the number of the Canonicall Bookes. For there is no booke in all the holy Scripture, which more clearely, or liuely speaketh of the Priest­hood of Christ: neither yet any which doth more highly extoll the dignitie, and vertue of his onely Sacrifice, the which he hath of­fered vp by his death: neither is there any booke which handleth more fully, both the vse and the abrogating of Ceremonies: In a word, none which instructeth vs better, that Christ is the ende of the Lawe. Let vs not then by any means suffer that the Church of God and we with it, should be depriued of so great a benefit: but on the contrarie, let vs hold it fast, and carefully keepe it. Nowe [Page 2]we neede not much busie our selues in standing to discusse who was the Author of it, some haue thought that S. Paul was the Author of it; some others S. Luke; others Barnabas, and others Clement; as S. Hierome declareth. Although Eusebius in the sixth booke of the Ecclesiasticall historie, maketh mention but of S. Luke and Clement. I know very well that since Chrysostoms time, it hath beene wholy receiued of the Greekes amongst the Epistles of S. Paul: but the Latines were of another opinion, e­uen amongst those which were neerest to the times of the Apo­stles. To speake what I thinke, I cannot beeleue that S. Paul was the Author of it. For there is no great likelihood, to say as some doe, that he suppressed his name of set purpose, because it was odi­ous and hatefull among the Iewes. And if this had beene so, why then should he make mention of Timothy? for by this onely word he had discouered himselfe, and had laid himselfe open sufficient­ly to their knowledge.

Contrariwise, the manner of teaching, as also his style, doth giue apparant testimonie that it was not of S. Pauls writing, but of some other mans doing: for he which wrote it, confesseth in the second Chapter, that he was one of the Disciples of the Apo­stles: now this is very farre off from Saint Pauls manner of speech. Moreouer the vse and custome of the Catechisme, which he toucheth in the sixth Chapter, cannot properly agree to Saint Pauls time. There are also other reasons, which we will touch when we shall come to the places that giue occasion there­of. I know the excuse very well which some are wont to bring tou­ching the style; to wit, that the difference thereof, doth giue no sufficient ground to stay our iudgements vpon, because that S. Luk, or some other did translate this Epistle out of the Hebrew tongue into the Greeke. But it is easie to refute this their conie­cture. I willingly let passe other places which are alleadged out of the Scripture: onely I say, that if this Epistle had beene written in Hebrew, there could not haue beene an allusion in this word Testament, whereupon the author of this Epistle doth stay him­selfe. I say then, that which he handleth touching the nature of the Testament in the ninth Chapter, cannot be drawne out of a­ny other fountaine then from the Greeke word. For the Greeke [Page 3]word signifieth two things, to wit, Testament, and Couenant: but Berith after the Hebrewes, signifieth Couenant onely. This rea­son will satisfie those that are of sound iudgement to prooue that which I haue said: to wit, that this Epistle was written in the Greeke tongue. As touching that which is brought to the con­trarie, that it is more probable that the Apostle would not write to the Iewes but in their owne tongue, this hath no more ground then the rest. How few were then to be found which vn­derstood the language of their auncestours? Againe, according to the region where euery one dwelt, so had he also learned the language of the same. Now the Greeke tongue was spread fur­thest abroad, and was more in vse then any other. I therefore come now to the Argument it selfe.

First we haue to obserue that the point whereat the Apostle aimeth, is not to perswade the Iewes, that Iesus the sonne of Ma­rie, was the Christ, and the Redeemer which had beene promised them. For in as much as he wrote vnto them which had alreadie made profession of Christianitie, he takes this article as wholy granted. But his onely drift is to prooue vnto them, what Christ his office is, to the ende they might thereby acknowledge that the obseruation of the ceremonies, were abolished by his comming. We must of necessitie note this distinction. For albeit it had beene a superfluous labour in the Apostle, in speaking to those which were then sufficiently perswaded that Iesus which was already manifested was that Christ; to busie himselfe in proouing the same point still vnto them: yet it was necessarie, that he should declare vnto them what this Christ was: because they did not as yet vnderstand the end; the vertue, nor the fruit of his comming. But whilest they beguiled themselues with a false exposition of the lawe; in stead of taking the solide bodie and substance, they rested themselues in the shadow; and contented themselues there­with. The like difference haue we at this day with the Papists: for they confesse indeed with vs that Christ is the sonne of God, which was promised to be the Redeemer of the world: but when we come to ioyne issue, as they say, they dispoyle him of more then the one halfe of his power.

But to the matter; he doth purposely begin his speach with the [Page 4]dignitie, and greatnes of Christ, because the Iewes were of opini­on that there was no reason why the law should be in lesse estima­tion than the Gospel. First of all then, he confirmes the Article whereupon the disputation was: to wit, that the doctrine brought by Christ ought to haue the soueraigne place, because it is the shutting vp and conclusion of all Prophesies. But least the reue­rence which they bare to Moses, might be some hindrance vn­to them in this behalfe, he shewes that Christ is much more ex­cellent than all others.

And hauing touched in briefe, wherein he is more excellent, he doth purposely subiect the Angels vnderneath him, to the end that all others with them, might be brought vnder, and abased in regard of Christ. Now this manner of proceeding which he vseth, is very fit; and not without great reason. For if he had begunne the comparison with Moses; it would haue beene very odious: but after he hath shewed by the scriptures, that euen the heauenly principalities are beneath Christ; there is neither Mo­ses, nor any man els whatsoeuer, which ought to refuse to be rā ­ged with them, that so the Sonne of God may haue the chieftie aboue all, both Angels and men. And therfore after the Apostle hath brought in the Angels vnder the rule and power of Christ; forthwith, as taking more courage vnto him, he comes to pro­nounce, and to expresse how much more Moses is inferiour: to wit, the difference is as much as is betweene the master and the seruant. Thus then, when we shall perceiue that he alwaies pla­ceth Christ in the soueraigne degree of principalitie, in the first three Chapters, let vs knowe that he aimeth at nothing but this, that when Christ speaketh, all others should hold their peace, and that nothing should hinder vs to giue our whole at­tention to his doctrine. Although when he sets him before vs, as our brother in our flesh, chap. 2. he calles and allures vs also by this meanes, to the end we should frame our selues vnder his o­bedience, and giue our selues wholy vnto him. Now he inter­mingles Exhortations, and threatnings for their sakes that are dull and slouthfull to obey, or; who do obstinately resist. This mat­ter is continued almost to the ende of the fourth Chapter. From thence he beginnes to expound the Priesthood of Christ: the true [Page 5]and pure knowledge whereof abolisheth all the ceremonies of the lawe. But hauing onely in briefe shewed how amiable the lawe ought to be vnto vs, and with what contentment of mind we may be bold to rest our selues in the same, he digresseth a little from his purpose to blame the Iewes, who like little children, did yet alwaies busie themselues in the first rudiments. Where he also striketh them with terrour, by thundring out a most sharpe and fearefull threatning against them: For he shewes that they stand in great danger to be reiected of the Lord, if they did con­tinue to be so slouthfull in profiting. But by and by after, he as­swageth this sharpnesse, saying, that he hath good hope, that they would become better. And this is to the ende he might rather encourage them to goe on forward, than to beate them downe al­together. Then he returnes againe to speake of the Priesthood of Christ. 1 And first he shews that it differs from the ancient Priest­hood which was vnder the lawe: 2 secondly, that it was more excel­lent, because it succeeded in the place of the other, and was con­firmed by othe; that it is eternall, and hath alwaies his force, and efficacie: 3 Thirdly, because he that exerciseth this office, surmoun­teth Aaron, and all others of the tribe of Leui in dignitie and honour. Of all which things he shewes that there was an Image and shadow in the person of Melchisedecke. Now to the ende he might the more certainely prooue that the ceremonies of the lawe were abolished, he shewes how they, as also the Tabernacle, were instituted to another end, to wit, to serue to the heauenly paterne, to which all was referred. Whence it followes, that they were not to be rested in, vnlesse we would stand at a stay in the midde way, making no reckoning to come to the marke. For con­firmation of this matter, he alleadgeth the place of Ieremiah, wherein there is promise made of a new Testament, which is no­thing els but the correction of the olde. Whence it followes, that the old was earthly and weake. So consequently comming to shew the similitude, and agreement, which is betweene the shadowes and the substance which was manifested in Christ, he concludes that all the ceremonies ordained by Moses, were abolished by his sacrifice; because the efficacie and vertue thereof is perpetu­all, and that in it is not onely contained the perfect and full con­firmation [Page 6]of the new Testament, but also the true and spirituall accomplishment of that externall priesthood, which was in force and had place vnder the lawe. Vnto the doctrine he addeth yet another exhortation, which he vseth as a spurre to pricke them forward, to the end, that renouncing all impediments, they might receiue Christ with such reuerence as was meete. As touching so many examples of the fathers, which he reciteth in the ele­uenth chapter, I thinke he alleadgeth them of purpose to giue the Iewes to vnderstand, that if so be they were to passe from Moses vnto Christ, it would be so far off, that they should decline from the holy Fathers, that by this meanes rather they should be the more neerely conioyned with them. For if faith were the principal vertue which was in the fathers, yea the very roote of all ver­tues; it follows then, that it is this faith also, by which they should especially be acknowledged for the children of Abraham, and of the Prophets. And contrariwise, that all those which followed not the faith of those fathers, were bastards & no children. And surely it is a point which greatly redoundeth to the praise of the Gospell; yea, it should cause vs also to haue it in so much the more estimation, in regard that therein we are found to be such, as haue a sweet accord, and societie with the vniuersall Church, which hath bin since the beginning of the world. The two last Chapters doe containe diuers directions for the rule of a good life: to wit, of hope, of bearing of the crosse, of patience, and perse­uerance, of the acknowledgement of Gods benefits, of obedience, mercie, and other worke [...] of loue; of chastitie, and all such like things. Lastly, he shuts vp his Epistle with a praier, and forth­with puts them in hope of his comming to see them shortly.

A COMMENTA­RIE OF M. IOHN CALVIN ON THE WHOLE EPISTLE to the Hebrewes.

CHAP. I.

1 At sundrie times, and in diuers manners God spake in the old time to our fathers by the Prophets: In these last daies he hath spoken vnto vs by his sonne,

2 Whom he hath made heire of all things, by whom also he made the worlds.

THe beginning of this Epistle tends to the praise and commendation of the doctrine of Christ: for he not onely shews that we ought to receiue it with reuerence; but that we are wholy to stay our selues in it alone. Now to the end we may vnderstand this the better, let vs note the opposition of euery member: 1 First, to the Prophets he opposeth the sonne of God: 2 to the fathers, we that haue liued since Christs comming: Lastly, 3 the diuers formes of speaking to the fathers; to that last reuelation which is now brought vnto vs by Christ. And yet notwith­standing this diuersitie, he propounds but one God; to the end no man should thinke that the law was contrarie to the Gospell, or that there should be one author of the law, and another of the Gospell. And that we may the better con­ceiue [Page 8]the summe of this proposition, we will vse this figure, ensuing:

God spake
In olde time by the Prophets: — Now by his Sonne.
Then to the Fathers: —But now to vs.
Then many times: —Now in the last times.

This foundation beeing laid, you see the consent and a­greement betweene the law and the gospel established: be­cause God, who is alwaies like vnto himselfe, and his word, which is the sure and vnchangeable truth, did speake both to them, and to vs. But it shall not be amisse to note the dif­ference betweene the fathers and vs: for in olde time God framed his speech and style vnto them in another manner, and order, than he doth now vnto vs.

For first of all, 1 they had the ministrie of the Prophets: but to vs, he hath ordained his own Sonne, for an Ambassadour. So then in this regard, our estate is better than theirs was. Secondly, 2 Moses is reckoned among those Prophets; but, as in the number of them, which are farre inferiour to the Sonne. 3 Lastly, as concerning the manner of reuelation of the truth; we are also therein farre before them. For the di­uersitie of visions, and all the rest of that gouernment which was vnder the old Testament, was a signe vnto them, that their gouernment was not yet setled and established for e­uer, as it should be afterward, when things were to be refor­med and setled wholly and perfectly. Hereunto appertains that which follows: At sundrie times and in diuers manners God spake, &c. for God would alwaies haue held and conti­nued one manner of proceeding vnto the ende, if so be the same had beene full, and perfect in all points. It follows by consequence therefore, that these diuersities were signes of imperfection. Moreouer I take these words, At sundrie times, and in diuers manners, so, as the first is to be referred to the diuers succession of times; for the Greeke word, to tran­slate it word for word, signifieth in many pieces: as it falleth out when they determine to speake more fully of a matter [Page 9]in time to come. By the second (in mine opinion) he signifies diuersitie, both in the forme and manner of speech.

When he saith, that he hath spoken to vs in these last times, his meaning is, that we haue no more occasion to hang in suspence, as though we had need to waite for some new re­uelation. For the word which Christ hath brought vnto vs, is not a treatise of some particular parts of doctrine, but it is the last closing vp, and perfect conclusion of all that which is needfull for vs to know vnto saluation. And in this sense, the Apostles doe take the last dayes, and the last times; which thing Paul also testifies, where he saith that the ends of the world are come vpon vs, 1. Cor. 10.11. If so be then that God hath now spoken once for all, in these last times; we for our parts ought to hearken vnto it, and not onely so, but in giuing eare vnto it, we are also to settle and stay our selues in it, and neuer enquire further: which two poynts are not a little auayleable for vs to vnderstand. For first the Iewes are greatly hindred, because they consider not that God hath deferred the reuelation of the perfect doctrine vnto these last times: and therefore contenting themselues with their lawe, they set not themselues forward to come home to the marke: on the other side although Christ be come, and is so receiued, yet an euill no lesse pernitious than the former hath begun to reigne in the world: for men now desire to seeke further than Christ; for I pray you what other thing is there in the whole Papacie, but a straying beyond the limits which the Apostle here hath set vs? Wherefore euen as the spirit of God in this place sommoneth all men to come to Christ: so also it forbids them to passe beyond the bounds of these last words here mentioned. In a word, the highest perfection of our wisdome is to be bounded within the limits of the Gospell.

Whom he hath made heire of all things:] Verse 2 He decketh Christ with his praises, thereby leading vs to giue him reuerence: for if the Father hath subiected all things vnder him, then we also doubtles doe belong to his iurisdiction. And with­all he sheweth that there is no good thing out of him, be­cause [Page 10]he is the vniuersall heire of the world. Oh how mise­rable and wretched are we then, if Christ inrich vs not with his benefits! In the second place he addes, that this honour doth of right belong to the sonne of God, to haue authori­tie ouer all things, because all things were created by him. Though I deny not but these two titles are attributed vnto Christ in diuers respects. For the world was created by him, because he is the eternall wisdome of God, which from the beginning of the world hath been the disposer of all his workes. And from hence we may note the eternitie of Christ. For it is necessarie indeede that he should be before he could create the world. But if we seeke the length of time, we shall finde no beginning thereof: now it doth no­thing at all diminish his power, in that it is said the world was made by him; which sounds as though he made it not himselfe. For it is a manner of speech commonly vsed in the Scriptures, that the Father is called the Creator: and whereas in some places it is added, by his wisdome, Prou. 8.27. By his word, Iohn 1.3. By the Sonne, Col. 1.16. It is all one as if wisdome it selfe were called the Creator of the world. Yet notwithstanding the distinction of the persons is to be noted not onely in regard of vs, but euen as it is in God, betweene the Father and the Sonne. Thus then by rea­son of the vnitie of the essence it falleth out that whatsoeuer is essentiall in God, appertaines both to the Father, and to the Sonne: as likewise, that whatsoeuer simply appertaines vnto God, is common both to the one and to the other. And yet this hinders nothing at all, but that euery person should haue his proprietie.

Now the name heire is giuen to Christ manifested in the flesh, for in that he was made man, he thereby clothed him­selfe with our very nature: this right of being heire of the world was conferred vnto him, to this end that he thereby might recouer that againe for vs which wee had lost in A­dam. For in the beginning God appointed man as heire of all his benefits, as if he had been his sonne: but the first man falling away from God by sinne, depriued both himselfe, [Page 11]and all his ofspring, not onely of Gods blessing, but of all good things themselues, therefore doe wee then begin by good right to enioy these blessings from God, when Iesus Christ who is the onely and vniuersall heire, receiueth vs to haue communion with him. For for this cause is he become heire, to the end he might inrich vs with his benefits. Yea the Apostle himselfe doth adorne him with this very title, to the end we might learne to know that without him, wee are naked and emptie of all good things. Whereas we haue translated of all things: the Greeke word might bee as well of all: and then it giues vs to vnderstand, that we ought to be subiect vnto Christ, because the Father hath giuen vs vn­to him. But I rather interpret it of all things, and so it signi­fieth that we are thrust out of the lawfull possession of hea­uen and earth, and of all creatures, till wee come to bee made one with Christ.

Vers. 3. Who being the brightnes of the glorie, and the in­graued forme of his person, and bearing vp al things by his migh­tie word, hath by himselfe purged our sinnes, and sitteth at the right hand of the maiestie in the highest places.

THese things are spoken partly of the diuine essence of Christ, and partly of his humane nature. For in that he is called the brightnes of the glorie, and the ingraued forme of his substance: it is proper to his diuinitie: the words fol­lowing likewise appertaine to his humanitie. Yet the whole verse containes notwithstanding an high commendation of the dignitie and excellencie of Christ. Moreouer, looke by what reason he is called the brightnes of the glorie; by the same reason he is called the ingrauen forme of his per­son. Both which manners of speech are borrowed from the creatures. For nothing can be said of things so high and ex­cellent, vnlesse we borrow some similitudes from them. It is needlesse therefore for vs to stand to dispute ouer subtilly how the Sonne, who is of one essence with the Father, is cal­led the brightnes of his glorie. Wee must confesse that that [Page 12]which is transferred from the creatures to the maiestie of God, is something improper: yet is it no absurditie that these things visible to our senses should bee applied vnto God, to the end we might be taught thereby what we are to seeke in Christ, and what profit he brings vnto vs. For wee must know, that this place leades vs not to the seeking out of vaine speculations; but to learne therein a true and sure doctrine of faith. Therefore wee are to applie these titles of Christ to our profit: for it is for our sakes that they are thus attributed vnto him. Doe wee heare then that the Sonne is called the brightnes of the glorie of his Father? Let vs thus thinke then in our selues: the glorie of the Father is to vs inuisible, till such time as it shine foorth vnto vs in Christ. Is he called the liuely image of his Fathers substance? It is to the end we might learne, that the maiestie of the Father is hidden from vs, till such time as he manifests the same vnto vs in this ingraued forme of his image. They which thinke not of this relation, and that these things are attributed vn­to Christ as in respect of vs, doe dispute ouer subtilly, and to no purpose: because they vnderstand not the meaning of the holy Apostle. For he doth not here take vpon him to shew what likenes of the Father the Sonne hath within him­selfe: but as I haue said, his meaning is to edifie our faith with fruite and profit: to the end we might learne that God is no otherwise manifested vnto vs, but in Christ. For so in­finite is that brightnes which is in the essence of God, that our eyes are dazeled therewith, till such time as hee shineth vnto vs in Christ: whereof it followeth, that vnlesse God shew vs his brightnes in Christ, we shall be vtterly blinded with the beholding of that light. And this indeede is a very profitable philosophie, namely to learne the excellencie of Christ by a liuely feeling and certaine experience of faith. As much is to be said as touching the other word, the ingra­ued forme, as I haue said. Thus then the Greeke word which is translated brightnes, signifieth in this place no other thing than a visible or shining light which our eyes are not able to beare: And the Greeke word which is translated image, sig­nifies [Page 13]a liuely forme of that substance which is hid and inui­sible. By the first word then we learne, 1 that out of Christ we can finde no light but rather meere darknes. For although God be the only light, wherewith we must be enlightened, yet there is no other meanes whereby he sheddeth the same into vs, but by this splendancie of his Sonne, if I may so speake. 2 By the second word we are admonished, that God is truly and fully knowne in Christ. For hee is no darke or shadowish image of him, but the liuely ingraued forme; re­sembling him naturally, as the money resembles the stamp of the Coyne wherewithall it is stamped. Nay the Apostle saith more: to wit, that the substance of the Father is as it were ingrauen in Christ. The Greeke word which I haue translated substance (therein following others) in mine opi­nion signifies not the being or essence of the Father, but the person. For it is vnapt to say, that the essence of God is in­grauen in Christ: seeing both the one and the other is but one simple essence. But it is proper and truly said, that all that which the Father hath of his owne, is naturally ingra­uen in the Sonne: so that whosoeuer hath the Sonne, hee hath also all that which is in the Father. Thus the ancient Fathers who taught faithfully, doe vse this word Hypostasis, which is to say substance, or subsistence, in such sense as it should be triple in God: and that this word ousia, which signifies essence, is but one and simple in God. S. Hillarie doth euery where take this word substance for person. Now although it bee not the Apostles purpose in this place to shew what Christ is in himself, but such a one as he declares himselfe vnto vs by effect: yet notwithstanding hee doth sufficiently refute the Arrians and Sabellians when he attri­butes that vnto Christ which onely appertaines to God, and foorthwith notes out two distinct substances in the Father and in the Sonne. For from hence wee gather that he is one and the same God onely with the Father, and yet that there is a distinction notwithstanding as touching the proprietie: so as both of them hath his subsistence.

And bearing vp all things] Properly it is, bearing al things. [Page 14]But the word to beare is taken to maintaine, or beare vp, and to cause all creatures to continue in their estate. For his mea­ning is that all things would presently fall to ruine, if they were not vpheld by his power. Notwithstanding when he saith by his word, this may be expounded as well of the Fa­ther as of the Sonne: but because the second exposition is the more receiued, and agreeth very well to the scope of the text, I am content to satisfie my selfe therein. Word for word it is by the word of his power: but according to the manner of the Hebrues, it is as much as if he had said by his mightie word. For whereas some doe thus turne the text, that Christ maintaines all things by his Fathers word, that is, by himselfe who is the word; it hath no colour at all. Be­sides, what neede is there of so constrained an exposition? For when the Scripture calles Christ the word of the Father, it is not wont to vse the word which is put here, that is, Rhe­ma, but another, to wit, Logos. Wherefore the word doth here simply signifie to will: and the sense is, that Christ who conserues the world by his onely will, and as it were with his onely becke; notwithstanding refused not to take vpon him the office by which he made the purgation of our sins. And this is the second member of the doctrine which is handled in this Epistle. For the maine groundworke of all the disputation consists in these two points: 1 First, that Christ ought to bee heard aboue all others, because hee hath the chiefe and soueraign [...] authoritie. 2 Secondly, that in as much as by his death he hath reconciled vs to his Father, hee hath thereby put an end to the old sacrifices. Now where hee saith, by himselfe: we must supplie an Antithesis: to wit, that the shadowes of Moses law were of no force to assist him in the doing of it. And hereby he shewes the difference be­tweene him and the Leuiticall Priests: for it was also said of them that they purged sinnes: but they borrowed this ver­tue from another: to wit, from Christ. To be short, his mea­ning is to exclude all other meanes, or helpes: in laying the power and price of the purgation of our sinnes onely vpon Christ.

And is set at the right hand.] As if he should say, after hee had obtained saluation for mankinde, he was receiued into the heauenly glorie, to the end he might gouerne all things. Now this is added, to shew that the saluation which he hath obtained is not temporarie. For otherwise it is our wont to measure his power by beholding of present things. He ad­monisheth vs then that wee ought not the lesse to esteeme Christ, because he appeares not now before our eyes, but ra­ther to thinke that the fulnes of his glorie consists in his be­ing receiued, and exalted to this high and soueraigne de­gree of honour and rule: for the right hand is transferred vnto God by way of metaphor and similitude: otherwise he is not shut vp in any place; neither hath he either right hand or left. When it is said therefore that Christ is set, it on­ly signifies that kingdome which is giuen him by his father, and that power whereof S. Paul makes mention, to wit, that at his name euery knee shall bow, Phil. 2.10. Wherefore to be set at the right hand of the Father, is nothing else but to gouerne and rule in the stead of the Father; as the Lieute­nants of Princes are wont to doe, to whom free and abso­lute power is giuen ouer all things. And therefore it is ad­ded, of the maiestie, in the highest places: to signifie that Iesus Christ is placed in the highest throne, wherein the maiestie of God shineth. Wherefore as he ought to be loued for our redemption, so ought he to be adored in regard of this his Maiestie.

Vers. 4. And is made so much more excellent than the An­gels, in as much as hee hath obtained a more excellent name than they.

5. For vnto which of the Angels said he at any time, Psalm. 2.7. 2. Sam. 7.14. Thou art my sonne, this day begat I thee? And againe, I will be his father, and he shall be my sonne.

HAuing in the former verses preferred Christ before Moses and all others; now also by comparing him with the Angels, hee further amplifies his glorie. It was a [Page 16]thing familiarly knowne to the Iewes, that the Law was gi­uen by Angels. They heard that which was written of them as touching their honour throughout the whole Scriptures: And as the world is wonderfully enclined to superstition, so also is it wont many times to darken the glorie of God, by too much exalting of Angels. Good reason it is then that they should be set in their proper place, least they might a­ny way hinder the brightnes of Christ. And first of all the A­postle takes his argument from Christs name: to wit, that hee is much more excellent than the Angels, because hee is the Sonne of God. Now he proues by two testimonies of Scripture, that Christ is adorned with this title: which two places wee will first examine, and afterward will gather the summe of the matter.

Thou art my Sonne, Vers. 5 this day &c.] It cannot be denied but that this is spoken of Dauid: why? because he represented the person of Christ. Therefore that which is written in this second Psalme, was figuratiue in Dauid: but all was liuely accomplished in Christ. For in regard that Dauid by subdu­ing many enemies, did thereby cause the limites of his king­dome to spread round about from one side to another, hee therein was a figure of this promise; I will giue thee the hea­then for thine inheritance. But what was this in respect of that large spreading of Christs kingdome, the bounds whereof stretch from the East to the West? By the same reason Dauid was in like manner called the sonne of God: that is to say, specially chosen of God to performe excel­lent things. But this alas was scarse one sparkle of that glo­rie which shined in Christ, in whom the Father hath ingra­uen his owne image. So that the name of Sonne, doth ap­pertaine onely to Christ by a speciall priuiledge: neither can it be transferred vnto any other whatsoeuer, but it shall be prophaned. For the Father hath set his seale on him, and vpon none else, Ioh. 6.27. Ioh. 10.36. Obiection. But it may seeme that the argument of the Apostle is not yet firme enough: for whereupon doth he ground it to prooue that Christ is more excellent than the Angels, but vpon this that hee hath the [Page 17]name of Sonne? Obiection. As if it were not common also as well to Princes, and all those that are placed in high dignities as to him: of whom it is written; I haue said ye are Gods, Psal. 82.6. and ye all are the children of the most high. Or as if the Prophet spake not more honourably of Israel when hee calles him the first borne of God, Ierem. 31.9. for this title of sonne is euery where attributed vnto him. Moreouer, Dauid in other places calles the Angels the sonnes of God. Who is like the Lord among the sonnes of the Gods? Psal. 89.6. But the answere is easie: to wit, Answer. that Princes are called by this name in regard of their preheminence: And Israel is so called to note out vnto vs the common grace of election: The An­gels in like manner are called the sonnes of the Gods by a figuratiue kinde of speech, because they are celestiall spirits, who haue a certaine taste of the diuinitie in the immortall blessednes. But when Dauid in the person of Christ calles himselfe the sonne of God simply without any addition, he therein notes out something more peculiar and excellent than all the honour not only of all Israel, but of Princes and Angels also. Otherwise it were but an improper kinde of speech and altogether vnfitting, if he should be called the sonne of God by way of excellencie, and yet should haue nothing in him more worthie than others: for by this title he is exempt out of the order and number of all degrees both of men and Angels.

Seeing these words then, Thou art my sonne, are exclusiue­ly spoken of Christ, it also followes, that such honour is vn­beseeming any of the Angels. If any doe yet replie, Obiection. that by this Dauid is exalted aboue the Angels: I answere, Answere. there is no inconuenience at all if hee be preferred before them, in as much as he is the figure of Christ: neither in that sense is it any iniurie to the Angels that the high Priest was called the mediatour to purge sinnes. For the Priests had not this as being properly theirs: but because they represented the kingdome of Christ; they therefore borrowed this name of mediatour from him. Yea, and howsoeuer the Sacraments are but dead things in themselues, yet notwithstanding [Page 18]they are adorned with those titles which the Angels cannot attribute vnto themselues without sacriledge.

Hereby then it sufficiently appeares, that the argumēt ta­ken from this title of Sonne, is good. As touching the gene­ration or begetting of the Sonne, this wee are to note in a word, that it is taken here by way of relation. For the sub­tiltie of S. Augustine is friuolous, who imagines that Christ is eternall to day, and so continues. True it is that Christ is the eternall sonne of God: for hee is his wisedome, begot­ten of him before all worlds: but this makes nothing to this present place, which speakes not of the eternall gene­ration of the Sonne, but is rather spoken in regard of vs, who doe now acknowledge him to be the Sonne of God, since the Father hath manifested him in the flesh. And ther­fore that same declaration whereof also S. Paul makes men­tion, Rom. 1.4. was as a kinde of eternall generation, as you would say: for this secret and hidden generation which went before, was vnknowne vnto men: and should not haue come to light if the Father had not approoued the same by a manifest and visible reuelation thereof.

Againe, I will be his father, &c.] In this second testimonie, that which we haue noted ought also to haue place: that is, howsoeuer Salomon is here chiefly meant (who otherwise was lesse than the Angels) yet notwithstanding he is now separated from the common order of all men, in that God promiseth him that he will be his Father: for God was not reckoned his father, as being one of the sonnes of Abra­ham, or as to some of the Princes, but to him which was more excellent than any other. So that looke by what pri­uiledge hee is established Gods sonne, by the same priui­ledge all others are shut out from hauing equall degree of honour with him. Now it appeares by the whole text, that this is no otherwise said of Salomon, but as he was a figure of Christ: for the rule and gouernment of the whole world is destinate to this Sonne, of whom hee there speakes: and a perpetuitie of gouernment is promised vnto him. On the contrarie, wee may see that Salomons kingdome was boun­ded [Page 19]within streight limits: and so farre was it off from en­during long, that by and by after his death it was diuided; and a little after that fell to ruine. Yet in the Psalme, the Sunne and the Moone are called foorth for witnesses; and the Lord himselfe sweareth that this kingdome shall re­maine safe and vnmoueable, as long as they shall shine in the firmament. Contrariwise the kingdome of Dauid fell to decay not long after, and in the end was cleane abolish­ed. Moreouer, it may be gathered from many places of the Prophets, that this promise was neuer otherwise meant than of Christ. So as none can cauill, that we haue coyned a new exposition: for this kinde of speech where they call Christ the sonne of Dauid, was vsually receiued among the Iewes.

Vers. 6. And againe, Verse 6 when he bringeth in his first begotten sonne into the world, he saith, Psal. 97.7. And let all the Angels of God wor­ship him.

NOw he exalts Christ aboue the Angels, for another rea­son: to wit, because the Angels are commaunded to worship him: for thereupon it followes that he is their head and Prince. Notwithstanding, it should seeme that the A­postle doth ill in applying this to Christ, which is spoken of God. If we answere that Christ is the eternall God, and that for this cause whatsoeuer appertaines to God, doth also by right appertaine vnto him; yet in so answering we should not satisfie all that might be obiected. For it were to small purpose to proue a doubtfull thing, if wee should ground our argument in this matter vpon the common titles of God. For the question is of Christ manifested in the flesh. But to answere to the point, we must vnderstand, that the A­postle expresly saith that the holy Ghost spake thus, when the Sonne was brought into the world: which were not truly spoken, if so be the Psalme did not speake properly of the manifestation of Christ: yet questionlesse that is the ve­ry true meaning. For the beginning of the Psalme is an ex­hortation [Page 20]to reioyce: neither doth Dauid speake there to the Iewes onely, but addresseth his speech to all the earth, euen to the Isles: that is to say, to the Regions beyond the Seas. The reason of this reioycing is in these words: for the Lord reigneth. And if afterward you reade the whole Psalm, you shall see nothing spoken in it that doth not belong to the kingdom of Christ, which began when the Gospell was published. Yea the whole argument of the Psalme is no­thing else but a letter authenticall wherewith Christ is sent (as you would say) to be put into the possession of his king­dome. Now what cause of ioy would this kingdome bring, if so be it were not a kingdom of saluation to all the world, that is to the Gentiles as well as to the Iewes? Wherefore the Apostle speakes here very properly and to the purpose, when he saith that Christ is brought into the world, to wit, because his comming vnto men is there described. Moreo­uer, the Hebrue word Elohim, for which hee hath here put Angels, doth also signifie Gods: but wee are not to doubt but the Prophet speakes of Angels. For this is the sense, there is no power so high which ought not to stoope to the rule of this King, seeing his comming shall bring an vniuer­sall ioy to all the world.

Vers. 7. Psal. 104.4. And of the Angels he saith he maketh the spirits his messengers, and his ministers a flame of fire.

IT seemes that in alleaging this place, hee drawes it to a contrarie sense. For albeit Dauid doth in this Psalme de­scribe the order which God keepes in gouerning of the world, so as out of all question in this fourth verse he speaks of the windes, which he saith are made his messengers, in re­gard they runne as posts at his becke, and commandement: so that whensoeuer hee causeth the earth to ring with his thunders, they shew what readie and diligent seruants they are to execute their charge enioyned them. But what doth all this appertaine to the Angels? For answere, some take it to be spoken allegorically, as if the Apostle should ex­pound [Page 21]the literall and plaine sense of Angels by an Allego­rie, as they call it. But for my part, I had rather say that this place was alleaged to bee applied to the Angels by way of similitude, in this manner: Dauid compares the windes to the Angels, so as they exercise the like office here in this world, which the Angels doe in heauen, the windes being visible spirits as it were. For euen as Moses in the creation of the world recites onely the things which are to be per­ceiued by our senses, and yet notwithstanding would that higher things should bee comprehended therewithall: so Dauid in this description of the world, and of nature, paints out vnto vs as in a table that which we ought also to vnder­stand as touching the heauenly order. And therefore I think this is an argument which we call a similie, that is to say, of a thing like, when the Apostle transferreth that to the An­gels, which is properly spoken of the windes.

8 But vnto the Sonne he saith, O God thy throne is for euer, Verse 8 and euer: the scepter of thy kingdome is a scepter of righte­ousnes.

9 Thou hast loued righteousnes, and hated iniquitie. Psal. 45.7. Where­fore God, euen thy God hath annoynted thee with the oyle of gladnes aboue thy fellowes.

WE cannot denie but that this Psalme was compo­sed for Salomon in forme of a mariage song: be­cause his mariage with the King of Aegypts daughter is ce­lebrated therein: yet notwithstanding wee must also con­fesse that that which is here said is so excellent, that it can­not wholy be found in Salomon. Now least the Iewes should be constrained to confesse that Christ is God, they doe here frame a cauill: to wit, that this throne is of God; or that we must supplie the verbe, hath established, and say, God hath established thy throne. Thus after the first exposition this word Elohim should be translated in the Genitiue, of God: the other exposition supposeth that this sentence should be imperfect: but one may very well see that they seeke no­thing else but starting holes. Whosoeuer then shall reade [Page 22]this sentence with ripenes of iudgement, and without a mind bent to cōtention, he shal not denie, but the Messias is here called God. And let no man replie, that here is a word vsed which is common both to Angels and Iudges: for we shall not finde it in any place wheresoeuer, attributed to any one in particular but to God. Further, to the end that I striue not about the word; where shal that throne be found which may be said to be stable and firme for euer, and euer, vnlesse it bee the throne of God? The perpetuitie therefore of the kingdome is a certaine testimonie of the Diuinitie. Now in the next place, the scepter of Christs kingdome is called a scepter of righteousnes: whereof there was some figure in Salomon, but very obscure: that is to wit, so farre forth as he shewed himselfe a iust King and a louer of Equitie. But the righteousnes, and equitie of Christ his kingdome doth farre exceede: the reason is, because that by the Gospell which is a spirituall scepter he reformeth vs according to the righ­teousnes of God. As much is to be said touching his loue of righteousnes. For because he loueth it, therefore he causeth it to reigne in those that are his.

Therfore God, euen thy God:] It is certaine that this is truly spoken of Salomon, who was annointed King, because God preferred him before all his brethren, who excepting this, were equall, and children of a King also as well as he. But it more fitly agreeth to Christ, who hath adopted vs to him­selfe to be companione together with him: howbeit, not by any right of our own. Now, he is anoynted aboue his felllowes, because he was annointed without measure: but wee, euery one according to our measure, as it is distributed; to some more, to some lesse. Moreouer, he was annoynted for our sakes, to the end all of vs might draw out of his fulnes, Ioh. 1.16. And therfore he is the Christ, that is to say the annointed: and we Christians, in, & thorow him, as the riuers do streame from the fountaine: now for as much as Christ hath receiued this annoynting in his flesh, it is therefore said that hee was annoynted of his God. For it should be absurd to say he was inferiour to God, vnlesse in regard of his humane nature.

[Page 23] 10 And thou Lord, Verse 10 in the beginning hast established the earth, and the heauens are the workes of thine hands.

11 They shall perish, but thou doest remaine: Psal. 102.26. and they all shall waxe old as doth a garment.

12 As a vesture shalt thou fold them vp, and they shall be changed: but thou art the same, and thy yeeres shall not faile.

IT may seeme at the first blush that this testimonie is vnfit­ly alleaged of Christ, and specially in a matter so doubt­full, as this is whereof he intreateth. For the question is not as touching the glorie of God, but of that which properly belongs and agreeth vnto Christ. Now there is no mention of Christ in this place, but the maiestie of God is rather set foorth simply vnto vs therein. But although it bee granted that no mention at all is made in this Psalme of Christ: yet we may euidently perceiue that hee is so pointed out in it, that no man neede to doubt but that his kingdome is re­commended as directly therein vnto vs, as if it were vttered in plaine and expresse words. Therefore whatsoeuer is con­tained in it ought to be applied to the person of Christ. For whereas it is said in the former verses, Thou wilt arise and haue compassion on Sion, that the Gentiles may feare thy name, and all the Kings of the earth thy glorie. And again, when the people shall be gathered together, and the king­domes to serue the Lord. All this you know was not fulfil­led but in Christ. Truly we shall but lose our labour to seek this God by whom all the world was vnited into one faith, and into one spirituall worship, vnlesse wee seeke him in Christ. So then all the whole contents of this Psalme, a­greeth properly to the person of Christ. First, in that hee is called the eternall God, Creator of heauen and earth. Se­condly, that such a perpetuitie is attributed vnto him as is without change; by reason whereof his Maiestie is exalted into the highest degree, and himselfe exempt out of the ranke of all creatures.

Now whereas Dauid saith, that the heauens shall perish, [Page 24]some do resolue the meaning thus: if it please God it should so come to passe, to wit, that the heauens should perish: which sense if it stand for good, then nothing should be af­firmed. But what neede haue we of such a constrained ex­position, when as we know that all creatures are subiect to vanitie: for to what purpose should this renument of the heauens serue, (the which they attend and waite for with no lesse desire then women in trauaile to be deliuered) if there should be no change of them? And therefore the per­petuitie of Christ, which is heere magnified, brings singular consolation to the faithfull, whereof this Psalme in the end concludes that they shall bee partakers. For Christ, you know, communicates himselfe, and all his benefits to his bodie the Church.

13 Verse 13 Vnto which of the Angels also said he at any time, sit at my right hand till I make thine enemies thy footestoole? Psal. 110.1. 1. Cor. 15.25.

14 Are they not all ministring spirits, sent forth to minister, for their sakes, which shall be heires of saluation?

HE yet againe extols the excellencie of Christ by ano­ther testimonie, to the end we might thereby knowe how farre he surpasseth the Angels. The testimonie is drawn out of the hundreth and tenth Psalme; which cannot be expounded of any other than of Christ. For seeing it was vn­lawfull for Kings to meddle with the Priesthood, as the le­prosie of king Vzzias witnesseth; and seeing it is manifest likewise that neither Dauid nor any of his successors in the kingdome were ordained Priests; it thereupon follows that here is a newe kingdome, and a new priesthood, seeing one onely is appointed for both these offices. Besides that; the eternitie of the Priesthood agrees to none but to Christ. Now in the very beginning of the Psalme he is placed at the right hand of God. Which manner of speech, is as much as if he had said, that the second place was giuen him after the father. For it is a similitude, or metaphor by which he signi­fies, that he is the fathers Lieutenant and his cheif Ambassa­dour [Page 25]to exercise his power, so as the Father raignes, and go­uerns; yet by his hand. Now there is neuer a one among the angels, which hath so excellent and high an office: and ther­fore it followes that Christ is farre more excellent than they all.

Till I make thine enemies thy footestoole. Because Christ is neuer without enemies which fight against his kingdome, it seemes not altogether out of danger: especially if we looke vpon those who endeauour with might and maine to ouer­throw it, for as they haue great power and force, so they want no subtiltie, nor politique deuises, but haue skill e­nough to put in exequution all their designes, with no lesse then a furious madnesse. And if on the other side, we shall with the eies of flesn onely, looke vpon the little flocke of Christ, wee shall thinke euer and anon that his kingdome is readie to fall to the ground. But this promise dispossesseth vs of all feare, to wit, when we heare that Christ shall neuer be plucked from his seate, but shall raigne rather, till he put all his enemies vnder his feete. It is profitable therefore for vs to note these two things. First, 1 that the kingdome of Christ as long as it is in this world shall neuer be in rest and quiet, but shall haue many aduersaries which will molest and trouble it: Secondly, 2 let the enemies plot and conspire what they can, Though Christs kingdome be daily assaulted, yet it shall ne­uer be van­quished. yet they shall neuer attaine the end which they aime at: because Christ who is set at the right hand of his father, is not set there for a time, but shall sit there till the end of the world. Therefore let all those looke to be o­uerthrowne and troden vnder his feete, that wil not submit themselues as subiects vnder his Imperiall gouernment.

Now if it be demanded, whether the kingdome of Christ shall end after he hath subdued, and destroyed all his ene­mies: I answer, it is certaine that it shall be perpetuall; but in such a manner as Saint Paul sets it out vnto vs in the 15. to the Corinth. For we must vnderstand that God, 1. Cor. 15, 27.28. who now will be onely knowne in Christ, shall then appeare vnto vs in himselfe. Christ indeed shall still continue the head both of men and Angels, but yet so, that his honour shall be no [Page 26]way diminished thereby. Now they that would be further resolued as touching this question, let them haue recourse to that which I haue written vpon the foresaid place to the Corinthians.

Are they not all, Vers. 14 &c.] Now he speakes of the condition of Angels, shewing what it is, to the ende the comparison betweene them and Christ might be the better vnderstood. True it is, that in calling them spirits, you may therein see a title of great excellencie. For in this respect they are aduan­ced farre aboue bodily creatures. But the word of admini­stration which he immediately addeth is to abase them, and to hold them within the compasse of their degree: for Ad­ministration is set against Rule, and Emperiall dominion. And this doth he yet further declare when he saith, To mini­ster: For the first Epethite, signifies as much, as if he had cal­led them officers: but the name of minister is yet more base and abiect. I grant indeed, it is an honourable seruice which God enioynes the Angels: yet notwithstanding in as much as they serue; it thereby appeares that they are too inferiour to be compared with Christ, Obiect. who is Lord ouer all. If any shall obiect that Christ is also called a seruant and minister in many places, and not onely Gods seruant, but ours also: the solution is easie, to wit, that it is not in regard of his na­ture, but of the voluntarie abasing of himselfe, as Saint Paul witnesseth, Ans. Phil. 2.7. and that his principalitie notwithstan­ding remaines entire and whole vnto him. Now the Angels on the contrarie, are created to the end they should serue; and their whole condition consists in administration. So then here is great difference betweene Christ and the An­gels, because that which is natural in the Angels, is in Christ by accident, in respect that he is cloathed with our flesh: and that which is theirs by necessitie, Christ accepted of it vo­luntarily. Moreouer Christ is so a minister or seruant, that it derogates nothing at all from his Emperiall maiestie, no not in the flesh. Now the faithfull receiue from hence a ve­ry singular consolation, when they heare that the heauenly armies are giuen them for their ministers and seruants, to [Page 27]procure their safetie and saluation. For is it not a wonderful pledge of Gods loue towards vs, to know that they are in­cessantly imployed for our protection? from this also pro­ceedes a singular confirmation of our faith: to wit, that our saluation beeing fortified with such helpes, is out of dan­ger.

God therefore doth prouide exceeding carefull for our weaknesse, when he giues vs such helpers which are readie with vs to resist Satan, and doe euery way imploy their po­wer and diligence to maintaine and defend vs. But this be­nefit is proper onely to the elect of God: and therefore if we would that Gods Angels should be ours, let vs looke that we be the members of Christ. They that will haue the prote­ction of Angels, must looke that themselues be the members of Christ. Some examples and testimo­nies might be brought indeed to shew how the Angels haue beene sent sometime to attend vpon the reprobates. For in Daniel the 10. chap. and 20. verse, mention is made of the Angels of the Persians, and Greekes. But I answer, they were so aided by the Angels, that by meanes thereof, the Lord aduanced the saluation of his people. For the hap­pie issues in their affaires, and the victories which they ob­tained, fell out alwaies to the benefit of the Church, as to their chiefe marke and end. Howsoeuer it be, this remaines sure, that all of vs being banished by our sinnes, out of the kingdome of God, we haue now no fellowship at all with the blessed Angels, but by the reconciliation made by Christ: and this is manifest by the ladder which the Patri­arke Iacob saw in a vision erected before him. Gen. 28.18.

CHAP. II.

1 Wherefore we ought diligently to giue heed to the things which we haue heard, least at any time we runne out. Verse 1

2 For if the word spoken by Angels was steadfast, and eue­ry transgression and disobedience receiued a iust recom­pence of Reward,

3 How shall we escape, if we neglect so great saluation, which [Page 28]at the first began to be preached by the Lord, & afterward was confirmed vnto vs by them that heard him,

4 God bearing witnes thereto, both with signes and wonders, and with diuers miracles, and gifts of the holy Ghost, ac­cording to his owne will.

FOr this cause we ought &c.] Now hee shewes what his drift hath been all this while in comparing of Christ with the Angels: euen that he might ther­by maintaine the soueraigne authoritie of his doctrine. For if the law which was giuen by Angels, ought not to bee lightly regarded and receiued: and if the transgression ther­of was also grieuously punished: what will become (saith he) of the contemners of the Gospel, which hath the Sonne of God both for the author and defender of it, and hath also been confirmed by so many miracles? The summe of these foure verses is this, that because the dignitie of Christ is farre greater than that of the Angels, so much the more reue­rence is due rather to the Gospell than to the Law. So then he commends and extols the doctrine, by the excellencie of the authors person. Obiection. Now if it seeme harsh vnto any, see­ing that both the doctrines, as well of the Law as of the Gospell are of God, and yet that the one should be prefer­red before the other, as if thereby the maiestie of God should be impaired, because the Law is lesse esteemed than the Gospell. Answere. The answere to this is easie, to wit, it is very certaine, that God ought alwaies to be heard alike as often as hee speakes: and yet it hinders not, but by how much the more plainly it pleaseth him to speake vnto vs, by so much the more haue we good reason with all reuerence and obedient affection to be moued forthwith to hearken, ac­cording to the measure of that which is reuealed. Not that God in himselfe is lesse at one time more than at another: but because we are vnable to acknowledge and perceiue his greatnes and excellencie alwaies alike.

Yet here ariseth also another question: Question. to wit, if the Law it selfe was not giuen by the hand of Christ. Which being [Page 29]so, it seemes the Apostles argument is absurd. I answere, Answere. that in this comparison, regard must be had on the one side to the hidden reuelation of Christ, and on the other side to that reuelation which was more manifest. Now for as much as Christ shewed himselfe but darkly, and as it were vnder shadowes and figures in the publishing of the Law, wee are not to wonder (if without mentioning of Christ) hee saith the Law was giuen by Angels. For at that time hee did not shew himselfe openly. But in the publishing of the Gospel his glorie was so euidently and cleerely reuealed, that he is worthily reputed to be the author of it.

Least at any time we runne out, or fall away. Although the diuers readings bee of no great consequence, because wee may collect the true sense by the Antithesis: for to take heed, and to runne out, are opposite. The first signifieth to con­serue and keepe: the second to shed, or suffer all that to be lost which was put within: as wee see in a sieue, or such like vessell. For I allow not of their opinion which interpret it, to die: as it is said in 2. Sam. 14.4. We all die and are as wa­ter spilt vpon the ground. We must rather (as I haue said) consider the Antithesis, which is betweene the words to hold, and to spill. For the attentiue minde is like a vessel close stopped, and the carelesse and wandring minde like a vessell full of holes.

For if the word spoken by Angels was stedfast:] Verse 2 That is to say, had his weight; because God did authorize it. Which may be the better vnderstood by those articles which con­taine the threatnings: for no breaker or contemner of the Law went vnpunished. This stedfastnes then signifies Au­thoritie: and that which is added of reward or punishment, is to be taken as an exposition of the former word stedfast: because it did hereby well appeare that it was not a vaine or needlesse doctrine, seeing God shewed his mightie hand in punishing the transgressors of it.

If we neglect:] Not onely the reiection, Verse 3 but also the very contempt of the Gospell doth iustly deserue punishment, that is, in regard of the greatnes of that grace which is offe­red [Page 30]therein. And therefore he saith, so great saluation. For God would haue vs to esteeme his gifts according to their excellencie. By how much the more pretious they be then, so much the more is our vile ingratitude, if wee prize them not according to their value. Now for as much as Christ is great; great and rigorous will Gods vengeance be vpon all the contemners of the Gospell. And it is to be noted, that the name of saluation is transferred in this place by the fi­gure Metonymia, to the doctrine: because as it is Gods wil and pleasure yt men shall be no other way saued than by the Gospel; He that reiects the Gospell, re­iects the salua­tion of God. so, in reiecting of it, we reiect the saluation of God. For it is the power of God to all them that beleeue. He then which seekes saluation by any other meanes, he will haue it without the power and vertue of God; and what a senseles­nes is that? But this title tends not onely to the magnify­ing of the Gospell, but it is also a singular stay and prop of our faith: because it testifies that the word is not in vaine, but containes in it most certaine and assured saluation.

Which first began to be preached by the Lord.] Here he op­poseth the Sonne of God, who was the first preacher of the Gospell against the Angels. Now withall he vseth a preuen­tion, to take away a doubt which might enter into many mens phantasies. For they had not beene taught by the mouth of Christ immediatly, because the most part of them had neuer seene him. Had they onely respected men then, by whose ministerie they were brought to the faith, it is likely they would not haue regarded that which they had learned of them. And therefore the Apostle admonisheth them that the doctrine which was deliuered vnto them by the ministerie of others, did not therefore cease to proceede from Christ. For hee saith, that they were the disciples of Christ, who faithfully reported that which they had heard and receiued of him. And therefore he vseth this word con­firmed: as if hee should say, it was not a matter of report scattered abroad hand ouer head, as if they knew not whēce it came, or as if they had it by suspected witnesses: but that it hath authors both graue, and also men of good credit. [Page 31]Furthermore, wee may know by this place that this Epistle was not penned by S. Paul: for he vseth not so to diminish his authoritie, as to make himselfe one of the disciples of the Apostles, not that he meant thereby to purchase any glorie to his owne person: but because false teachers vnder this colour endeuoured so much the more to lessen the credit of his doctrine. It appeares then that it is not S. Pauls, seeing the author writes that hee had the Gospell by the report of others, and not by reuelation.

God bearing witnes thereto.] Verse 4 The Apostles had not onely that which they preached by reuelation from the Sonne of God, but the Lord did also therewithall confirme their preaching by miracles, as by an authenticall subscription. Therefore they offer great iniurie not onely to Gods word, but to his workes also, who doe not with all reuerence re­ceiue the Gospel which is ratified and confirmed by so ma­ny testimonies. Now for the better amplification hereof he vseth three words to note out miracles. They are called Powers, 1 because that in them the Lord sheweth a speciall and extraordinarie testimonie of his vertue and power. They are called Signes, 2 because they awaken mens mindes to looke a little higher than to that which appeares. They are called Miracles, 3 because they containe somewhat that is new and strange. In this word witnessing, is noted the right vse of miracles: to wit, they serue to establish and confirme the Gospell: for we finde that almost all miracles whensoe­uer they were wrought, serued as seales to the word of God. And therefore so much the more ought the superstition of the Papists to be condemned, which alleage the miracles of their owne deuising; for they make them serue (not to con­firme) but to corrupt the truth of God.

This word, thereto, hath this sense, that wee are confirmed in the faith of the Gospell by an agreement and harmonie which is betweene God and men, because the miracles wrought by God doe agree with the voyce of men, and serue as a testimonie thereto. Afterwards he addeth, Gifts of the holy Ghost: by which the doctrine of the Gospell was al­so [Page 32]adorned, as being dependances of it. For to what pur­pose hath God distributed the gifts of his Spirit, but to the end they might bee meanes and helpes in part to publish this doctrine; and in part to beget an admiration in men, that their hearts might be moued thereby to obey the do­ctrine? For otherwise S. Paul saith in the first to the Cor. 14.22. that the diuersities of tongues are giuen for signes, not to them that beleeue, but to them that beleeue not. This clause, according to his will, admonisheth vs that those powers and wonders, whereof hee made mention before, cannot be attributed to any other than to God, and that they were not done by chance, but by his determinate counsell, to the end they might seale vp the truth of the Gospell.

5 For hee hath not put in subiection vnto the Angels the world to come, whereof we speake.

6 But one in a certaine place witnessed, Psal. 8.5. saying, What is man that thou shouldest be mindfull of him? or the sonne of man, that thou wouldest consider him?

7 Thou madest him a little inferiour to the Angels: thou crownest him with glorie and honour, and hast set him aboue the workes of thine hands.

8 Thou hast put all things in subiection vnder his feete. Matth. 28.18. 1. Cor. 15.27. And in that he hath put all things in subiection vnder him, he left no­thing that should not [...]e subiect vnto him. But wee see not all things yet subdued vnto him.

9 But wee see Iesus crowned with glorie and honour, Philip. 2.8. which was made little inferiour to the Angels, through the suffering of death, that by Gods grace he might taste death for all men.

FOr he hath not] He proues againe by another argument that wee ought to obey Christ: Vers. 5 to wit, because the Fa­ther hath put the rule and highest gouernment ouer the whole world into his hands: of which honour the Angels are vncapable. From whence it followes, that there is no­thing in the Angels be it neuer so great that ought to hin­der him who onely is the highest, that hee should not haue [Page 33]the soueraigntie ouer all creatures. But it is needfull in the first place that we examine the Psalme which he alleageth: because it seemes he draweth the words thereof vnfitly vn­to Christ. For may some say, Obiection. Dauid doth there recite the be­nefits which God sheweth to mankinde. And after he had considered of the power of God in the heauens, and in the starres, he comes in the next place to speake of men: concer­ning whom the wonderfull bountifulnes of Gods goodnes doth especially appeare. And therefore it should seeme he speakes not of one man alone, but of all men in generall. To which I answere, Answere. all this lets not but these sentences may be restrained to the person of Christ. I denie not but man from the beginning was set into the possession of the world, to the end hee should haue lordship ouer all the workes of God: but he deserued by his transgression to bee depriued, and dispossessed of al that rule and gouernment. For it is the iust punishment of ingratitude in a vassall, who holds all he hath of another, that his Lord whom he refuseth to acknow­ledge, or serue faithfully as hee ought, should dispoyle him of all that right, and of all those benefits which were giuen him before. And therefore as soone as Adam turned away from God by his sinne, he was worthely depriued of all the benefits he had receiued. Not that hee lost the vse, but be­cause hee could no longer lay claime vnto them; himselfe hauing forsaken God the giuer of them. And euen concer­ning the vse also, God would there should remaine signes therein of this priuation. As for example, how comes it to passe that the beasts doe rise vp in fiercenes against vs: and wheras they should feare our countenances, we feare them: so that some of them can neuer be brought into subiection, and those that bee, it is with great difficultie for the most part? What is the reason that many of them are hurtfull vn­to vs so many waies? that the earth doth not of it selfe bring forth encrease according to the tilling and sowing bestow­ed vpon it, that the heauens, the aire, the sea, and other crea­tures are become so noysome and hurtfull vnto vs? Is it not because we haue rebelled against our heauenly Creator?

not [...] this benefit of God doth in no sort any way belong vnto vs, [...] selues apper­taine vnto God. till that right which wee haue lost in Adam, be restored to vs againe in Christ. For which cause S. Paul teacheth that meates and drinkes are sanctified vnto vs by the word and prayer, 1. Tim. 4.5. And in another place hee saith, that to the vnbeleeuing nothing is pure, because without faith their mindes and consciences are impure and defiled, Tit. 1.15. And that is it which we had in the beginning of this E­pistle, where it is said that Christ is ordained of his Father heire of all things. Truly in that he attributes the inheritance to one onely, hee thereby excludes all others as strangers. And that very iustly: for wee are all of vs banished out of Gods kingdome. What haue we to doe then to scrape vnto our selues those creatures which hee hath ordained for the nourishment of his household children and seruants? But Christ, by whom wee are called againe into the familie and household of God, receiueth vs with him into the societie of his right and title, to the end that by him (with all the e­lect) wee might enioy the whole world with the blessing of God. For man hauing receiued rule and lordship ouer all creatures, and by his sinne losing all right and interest in them, both for himselfe, and all his posteritie: God the Fa­ther instituted in his place a second Adam, his only begot­ten sonne Iesus Christ God and Man, to whom hee hath gi­uen power and lordship ouer all creatures, and hath also gi­uen him authoritie to communicate the comfortable right, and lawfull vse of them to whom he will, that is to say, vnto the faithfull, but not to the reprobates and vnbeleeuers.

And therefore S. Paul shewes that Abraham was made heire of the world by faith: that is to say, because he was in­corporated into the bodie of Christ, Rom. 4.13. which be­ing [Page] [...] men to seeke timely, and earnestly. Now this restauration and renument is begun in Christ as by the head. We neede not doubt then to behold our title and recouerie of our first estate in him, All our right to the creatures cōsists in Christ. as often as there shall be any question moued touching the power and authoritie of man ouer all crea­tures. And hereunto appertaines that which hee expressely mentioneth touching the world to come. For hee takes it for the renued world to come. And to the end we may the bet­ter vnderstand this, let vs cōceiue in our minds two worlds: first, 1 that old world which was corrupt by the sinne of A­dam: and the second, that which is repaired by Christ. 2 For the estate of the first creation is forlorne and falne into ruine with man, so farre foorth as there is respect vnto him. Two worlds. This Psalme then shall haue no place till such time as a restaura­tion be made by Christ. We now see well that he calles not onely the estate of those things which we waite for after the resurrection the world to come: but that also which took his beginning from the first raigne of Christ, and shall haue his accomplishment in the last redemption. I cannot conceiue the reason why hee suppressed Dauids name: and yet I as­sure my selfe that hee doth not call him a certaine one, by way of contempt, but doth so name him by way of honour, as being one of the Prophets, or of the most excellent and authentique authors.

Thou hast made him a little inferiour.] Verse 7 Here we doe meete with a new difficultie in the exposition of the words. I grant (as I haue alreadie said) that the place is not improperly ex­pounded of the Sonne of God: but a man would thinke the Apostle doth now draw the words to a sense, contrarie to Dauids meaning: for it seemes that he referres this word a little, to the time: and thereby vnderstands the abasing of [Page 36]Christ in regard he was made none account of: restraining the glorie to the day of the resurrection: whereas Dauid stretcheth it generally to the whole life of man. I answere, that it was not the Apostles meaning to recite the natiue ex­position of the words. For no inconuenience followes, if we say that he alludes to the words of Dauid, thereby to a­dorne the point which he handleth: as S. Paul in the tenth to the Romanes alleageth the place of Moses, Who shall ascend into heauen? He addeth by and by after, not the in­terpretation, but rather an amplification to adorne his speech, transferring that to the heauenly heritage, and to hell, which Moses had said of the Heauens, and of the Sea. And such is the intention of Dauid, Lord (saith he) thou hast aduanced man to such great dignitie, that hee wants not much of approching neere to the honour of God, or of the Angels. For thou hast made him ruler ouer the whole world. The Apostle ment not to ouerthrow this sense, nei­ther yet to turne it to a contrarie: but his meaning is onely that we should behold in Christ that abasemēt which he did vndergo for a little time: and afterward that glorie where­withall he was crowned for euer: which he doth, rather by way of allusion to the words, than to expresse that which Dauid ment by them. He taketh to be mindfull and to visite, for one thing; sauing that to visite hath a more full signifi­cation. For he notes the presence of God by the effects.

Now in that he hath put all things.] Vers. 8 One would thinke that the argument should be framed thus; All things are subiect to the man of whom Dauid speakes. But all things are not made subiect to mankinde: therefore hee speakes not of e­uery particular man. But this argument would not hold: because the second proposition, which wee call the minor, doth also agree vnto Christ. For euen to him all things are not yet subiect: as S. Paul shewes 1. Cor. 15.18. Therefore the words following haue another sense. For after hee hath made Christ to bee the ruler ouer all creatures without ex­ception, he addeth by way of a contrarie obiection, But we see not yet all things subiect vnto him: and to satisfie vs here­in, [Page 37]he teacheth that one may see that accomplished in Christ notwithstanding euen now, which followeth by and by af­ter touching his crowning with glorie and honour. As if he had said, although this generall subiection doth not yet appeare vnto vs, let vs notwithstanding content our selues with this, that after his death he was raised to a more high degree of honour. For that which is yet wanting, shall at the last bee accomplished in his time.

But in the first place, some are offended that the Apostle doth ouer nicely gather that all things should not as yet be subiect vnto Christ, because Dauid meant to comprehend al things generally. For the kindes of creatures which hee af­terwards reckoneth vp, shewes nothing of all this: to wit, the beasts of the field, the fishes of the sea, and the birds of the ayre. I answere, that one generall sentence is not to bee restrained to these kindes, because Dauids meaning was on­ly to shew some examples of this lordship in those things which doe most ordinarily present themselues before our eyes: or rather to the least things, that wee might know no­thing is ours but by the bountie of God, and by the partici­pation of Christ. Wherefore wee may thus resolue this sen­tence, Thou hast put all things vnder him, not onely the things which serue to eternall blessednes, but also euen those lesser things which serue for the vse and benefit of the bodie. Howsoeuer, it is certaine,that this inferiour lordship ouer the creatures depends vpon a superiour. Hereupon some make this question; Question. how is it that we see not yet all things subiect vnto Christ? Answere. But wee shall finde a solution to this question in the place of Paul before alleaged: and we haue also somewhat touched the same in the beginning of this Epistle. Christ hath yet continuall warre with diuers ene­mies, and therefore he is not yet in very deede in the peace­able possession of his kingdome. Now he is not constrained to hold this warre by any necessitie, but voluntarily: for in that his enemies are not subdued vntill the last day, it is to the end we in the meane while might be daily tried by such exercises.

Iesus, Verse 9 which was made a little inferiour to the Angels.] Be­cause the signification of the Greeke word which wee tran­slate, a little, is ambiguous (for it may either bee referred to the time, or to the manner of this abasement) he hath more regard to the thing in it selfe such as it was in the person of Christ, than to the true and natural exposition of the words, as I haue alreadie said: wherein he giues vs occasion to con­sider of that glorie in the resurrection, which Dauid extends to all the gifts wherewith man is adorned by Gods liberali­tie towards him. Yet it is not inconuenient that the Apostle doth thus applie the words of the Prophet, because hee leaues the literal sense still whole and sound. That which he saith, by the suffering of death, is as much as if it had bin said, that Christ in enduring of death, was exalted into this glo­rie which he obtained, as S. Paul in like manner shewes in the second to the Philippians, vers. 8. not that Christ gat vn­to himselfe some particular thing, as the Sophisters forge, who say that he first of all merited eternall life for himselfe, and afterward for vs. For this manner of speech is onely to shew by what meanes he obtained his glorie. But why was Christ crowned with glorie? To the end euery knee should bow before him, Philip. 2.10. Wherefore it may be conclu­ded from the finall cause, that all things were giuen into his hands.

That by the grace of God he might tast of death for all men.] Hee recites the cause and fruite of Christs death, that wee should not thinke it any way diminished his dignitie. For when we heare that so great a benefit is obtained for vs by his death, there is no place left for contempt, because the admiration of the diuine goodnesse doth wholy rauish vs. Where hee saith, for all, hee not onely meaneth, that it should serue as an example to all, as Chrysostome brings in the similitude of the Physition, who first tasteth himselfe of the bitter potion, to the end the patient should make no dif­ficultie at all to drinke it vp: but the Apostles meaning is that Christ died for vs, because hee setting himselfe in our place, hath deliuered vs from the curse of death. And there­fore [Page 39]he addes that it is done by the grace of God, because the cause of our redemption was the infinite loue of God, which caused him not to spare his onely begotten sonne, Rom. 8.32. Whereas Chrysostome expounds to feele death, in stead of to taste thereof (as you would say with the tip of the lips) because Christ obtained victorie ouer death: I doe neither reiect nor disallow it: notwithstanding I will not affirme that the Apostle meant to speake so subtilly.

10 For it became him, for whom are all these things, and by whom are all these things, seeing that he brought many children vnto glorie, that he should consecrate the Prince of their salua­tion through afflictions.

11 For he that sanctifieth and they which are sanctified are all of one: wherefore he is not ashamed to call them brethren. Psal. 22.23.

12 Saying, I will declare thy name vnto my brethren: Psal. 18.3. in the midst of the Church will I sing praises vnto thee.

13 And againe, I will put my trust in him. And againe, Isai. 8.18. Behold here am I, and the children which God hath giuen me.

THe point whereunto the Apostle aimeth, is to make the abiection of Christ glorious in the eyes of the faithfull. For when he saith that he clothed himselfe with our flesh, it seemes he meant to set Christ among the common order of men. And then the crosse being added, it abaseth him be­low all sorts of men. Christ must not be the lesse e­steemed, be­cause he wil­lingly abased himselfe for our sakes. Wherefore good heede must be taken that Christ bee not the lesse esteemed, because that of his owne good will he made himselfe of none account for our sakes. And this is the point which is now handled in this text. For the Apostle shewes that euen for this cause the Sonne of God ought to be honourably esteemed; in regard he was thus consecrated to bee the Prince of our saluation. First of all he takes it for granted, that Gods ordaining of it ought to bee rested in, because that as all things are sustai­ned by his power, so ought they also to serue to his glorie. Wherefore wee ought to seeke no better cause than this; It so pleased God. Hereunto appertaines that circumlocution [Page 40]of words which hee vseth: By whom, and for whom are all things: hee might in one word haue named God; but his meaning was to shew that wee must hold and esteeme that to be chiefly good, which God hath ordained and appoin­ted, whose will and glory is the very right end of all things. Yet notwithstanding it seemes that which hee would say is not yet fully prooued, to wit, that it was conuenient that Christ should be consecrated after this manner. But this de­pends vpon the ordinarie course which God is wont to hold in his dealing with those that are his. For his will is they should be exercised with diuers miseries, and that their whole life should bee a continuall crosse. It was necessarie then that Christ, as hee was the first borne, should be conse­crated by the crosse, thereby entring into his principalitie; because it is the rule and common condition of all. This is the conformitie of the head with the members, whereof S. Paul entreateth, Rom. 8.29.

Now it is a singular consolation to asswage and sweeten the bitternes of the crosse, when the faithfull doe heare that they are sanctified vnto glorie together with Christ by mi­series and tribulations: and that in very deed they doe per­ceiue there is good cause why they should embrace the crosse amiably, rather than fearefully. Which cannot bee brought to passe, vnlesse this shame of the crosse bee by and by swallowed vp, and the glorie that thereby comes vnto them doth also shine forth. For who will despise that which is sacred; yea that which euen God himselfe hath sancti­fied? Who will esteeme that to bee reprochfull wherewith we are prepared vnto glorie? Now both the one and the o­ther is here affirmed of the death of Christ. By whom are all things. When it is spoken of the creation, this is attributed to the Son as a thing which is proper vnto him, to wit, that all things were created by him: but the Apostle signifies no­thing els in this place, but that all creatures are steadie and vpholden in their estate by the power of God. Whereas we haue turned the word, to consecrate, others haue put, to make. But for as much as the Greeke word which the Apostle v­seth [Page 41]hath diuers significations, I thinke it is very cleere, that mine exposition agrees best to the scope of the text. For he notes here a solemne and lawfull consecration, by which the children of God are brought in to obtaine their degree, yea euen to bee separated from the rest of the world: and mention also is by and by after made, of sanctification.

For he which sanctifieth, and they which are sanctified, &c.] Verse 11 He proues that that which he hath said ought to be accom­plished in the person of Christ, by reason of the coniunction which is between him and his members. And in the meane while hee shewes that it is a singular testimonie of Gods goodnes that Christ hath taken our flesh. He saith then that the author of holines, and wee which are partakers of the same are all of one; that is to say, of one nature, as I for mine owne part doe interpret it. It is commonly vnderstood of Adam. Some doe referre it to God; but altogether without reason. For I thinke it rather to be meant of one nature: as if he should say, made and framed of one lumpe. Now this serues greatly to augment our confidence and assurance; to wit, that we are ioyned to the Sonne of God by so streight a bond, that wee may finde the very same holines in our na­ture, whereof we stand in neede. For he doth not onely san­ctifie vs as he is God, but the proprietie to sanctifie is also in his humane nature: not that the humanitie hath this ver­tue of it selfe, but because God hath shed into it a perfect fulnes of holines, to the end we should all draw our holines from thence. To which, this sentence hath respect, For their sakes I sanctifie my selfe, Ioh. 17.19. Doe vve at any time see our selues vnclean? we neede not seeke farre for the remedie, for it is in our owne flesh. Thus then if wee be pro­phane and vncleane, we neede not seeke that remedie farre off, which is offered vs in our owne flesh. If any had rather take it of the vnity in the Spirit (which is farre otherwise be­tweene the faithfull and the Sonne of God than it is com­monly betweene men) I doe not gainsay it. Notwithstan­ding I willingly follow that which is the most receiued; seeing it is not contrarie to reason.

For which cause he is not ashamed to call them brethren.] This place here alleaged is taken out of the two and twenty [Page 42]Psalme. Now that Christ is there brought in speaking, or Dauid in the person of Christ, wee haue first of all the Euan­gelists for witnesses, who doe alleage many verses of this Psalme: as namely these, They parted my garments among them: They gaue me gall for my drinke: Also, My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me? Afterwards euen the thing it selfe sheweth it. For in the historie of the passion, we may see a liuely image of all things there mentioned. And the conclusion of the Psalme, which is the vocation of the Gen­tiles, cannot be referred to any other than to Christ. All the ends of the earth shall turne vnto God, and all the families of the Gentiles shall bow before him: The kingdome is the Lords, and he shall rule ouer the Gentiles. The truth of all these things is only in Christ, who did not enlarge Gods kingdome in little or narrow places, as Dauid did, but hath spread it through the world, whereas it was before shut vp within certaine bounds and limits. Wherefore this place here alleaged is also questionlesse spoken of him, which he doth very fitly; and vseth a most significant word when he saith, he is not ashamed. For how great is the difference which is betweene him and vs? Surely hee humbled himselfe very low, when hee vouchsafed to call vs his brethren: who o­therwise had bin vtterly vnworthie to be esteemed so much as his vassals. The circumstance also doth greatly amplifie this wonderfull fauour of his towards vs. For Christ speakes in that place, It is no small honour that Christ doth vs, in calling vs his brethren. not as a mortall man in the shape of a seruant, but as being clothed with immortall glorie after his resur­rection. Wherefore this title is no lesse excellent, than if hee had carried vs vp into heauen with him. As oft therefore as we heare that Christ calles vs brethren, let vs remember hee doth after a sort clothe vs with this qualitie, that with the name of brethren we might also apprehend the blessed life, with all the heauenly benefits contained therein.

Moreouer, it is to be noted what office Christ takes vpon him, Verse 12 to wit, to declare the name of God: which began at the publishing of the Gospel, and is daily continued by the of­fice of the Pastors. Whence we gather, that when the Gos­pell [Page 43]is preached, it is to bring vs to the knowledge of God, to the end his goodnes might be magnified and extolled a­mongst vs. Also we may note, Christ the au­thor of the Gospell. that Christ is the author of the Gospell, howsoeuer it is offered vnto vs onely by men. And that is it which S. Paul saith, 2. Cor. 5.20. that hee, and the rest of the Ministers are Ambassadours for Christ: when they doe beseech vs in the stead of Christ to be reconciled to God. Which ought to affect vs with great reuerence to­wards the Gospell. For truly we are not to thinke that they are men which speake, but Christ rather by their mouth. For euen then when hee promised to preach the name of God vnto men, hee ceased to conuerse with them in the world, and yet questionlesse he attributes not this office vnto him­selfe for nothing. He hath therefore fully accomplished it by his Apostles and Ministers.

In the midst of the congregation.] It yet appeares more ma­nifestly by this, that the publishing of the praises of God, is alwaies contained in the Gospell. For as soone as it is giuen vs of God to know him; infinite are his praises which doe sound in our hearts and eares. Let vs also note herewithall that Christ by his example doth exhort vs to sing these prai­ses publikely, in such wise as they may bee heard of many. For it is not sufficient that euery one of vs apart should giue thankes for the benefits wee haue receiued of God, vnlesse by testifying the same our thankfulnes openly, we do there­by mutually stirre vp one another to doe the like. And veri­ly this doctrine is as a sharpe goad in our sides to pricke vs forward to praise God with a more ardent affection of heart, seeing we heare that Christ singeth first, and doth as it were giue vs the tune to make vs sing after him.

And againe, I will trust in him.] Verse 13 Seeing this sentence is contained in the 18. Psalme, vers. 2. we neede not doubt but it is taken out thence. For besides that verse which S. Paul alleageth, Rom. 15.9. applying it to the kingdom of Christ, touching the vocation of the Gentiles, Psal. 18.50. the order of the ar­gument thereof sufficiently shewes that Dauid there speaks vnder the person of another. For wee shall scarsely see the [Page 24]least shadow of that great and excellent maiestie in Dauid, which is there set foorth with most magnificent termes. He boasts himselfe to haue been placed the head ouer the na­tions: and that euen strangers, and such as knew him not should of thēselues submit their necks vnder him at the on­ly hearing of his renowme. Now Dauid indeed with force of armes conquered some people which were neighbors & very well knowne, and made them tributaries vnto him: but what is this in regard of the conquests of many other Kings besides? Moreouer, where is that voluntarie subiection? where are the people so farre off, that hee should not know them? In a word, where is that solemne publishing of the grace of God among the Gentiles, whereof the conclusion of the Psalme makes mention? It is Christ then vndoubted­ly who is ordained to be the head ouer diuers nations, to whom strangers should submit themselues euen from the ends of the earth, and that onely by being moued with the report of him, that is to say, being touched with the hearing of the word. For they are not constrained to receiue his yoke by force of armes, but being subiected by force of the do­ctrine, they willingly offer themselues to obey him. We do also see in the Church that same fained and dissembling profession, whereof the Psalme speaketh. For many in all times doe professe themselues to bee of Christ; but it is not from the heart. Let vs hold this then as a thing certaine, that the text of this Psalme which the Apostle alleageth is fitly and properly expounded of Christ. But what is all this to the present purpose? Obiection. For although Christ doe trust in God, it seemes it should not therefore follow that wee and Christ are one. Answer. I answere, the argument is good: for if so be hee had not been a man subiect to humane necessities, he should haue had no neede of such trust. Seeing therefore that him­selfe depends vpon the helpe of God, he hath the same con­dition with vs. Truly it is not in vaine or for nothing that wee are so commaunded to trust in God: for without faith we are vtterly miserable, and poore wretched creatures. The trust then which we put in God, is a testifying of our pouer­tie [Page 45]and want. Howbeit in one point we differ from Christ: that is to say, hee did voluntarily submit himselfe to those infirmities; which are imposed vpon vs by necessitie. Yet this ought greatly to imbolden vs to trust in God, because we haue Christ for our Captaine and Master. For who shall feare to goe astray following his steps? We neede not feare, I say, that our faith which wee haue in common with Christ should be in vaine, seeing we know it cannot be deceiued.

Behold here am I and the children &c.] It is very certaine that Isaiah in this eight chapter speakes of himselfe. For howsoeuer it be true that he giues the people hope of their deliuerance, and that the promise which hee published was not receiued as a thing of any certaintie: yet to the end the infidelitie and obstinacy of the people should be no discou­ragement vnto him, the Lord commaunds him to seale vp that doctrine which he had taught, among a very few of the faithfull. And it is as much as if hee had said, the doctrine which thou hast deliuered is reiected of the greater part, yet there are some notwithstanding (although a little handfull indeede) which will receiue it. Isaiah staying himselfe vpon this answere, takes courage againe vnto him, and protesteth that he and the disciples which God hath giuen him, are al­waies readie to follow God. Now it remaines to shew how the Apostle applies this sentence to Christ. First of all, there is no man of sound iudgement which will denie, but that which is there spoken as touching the Lord, who should be a stone of offence to the kingdome of Iudah and Israel, was fulfilled in Christ. And in very trueth, like as the returne and deliuerance out of the captiuitie of Babylon, was as a beginning and figure of that principall deliuerance which was atchieued vnto vs and to the fathers by the outstretched arme of Christ: so also there were then so few euen among the Iewes which enioyed this benefit of God; that onely a small remnant were saued. Now that was a foretelling as it were and a signe of their blinding which was to ensue: by which it is now come to passe that in reiecting of Christ, they haue therewithal reiected God also, and haue worthily [Page 46]perished. For we must note that the promises as touching the restauration of the Church, whereof the Prophets make mention; began when the Iewes were brought out of cap­tiuitie, and doth also reach euen to the kingdome of Christ. As also the Lord himselfe in bringing backe the people from thence, had this end, that the Church should continue euen to the comming of his sonne, by whome at the last it was truely and firmely established. Seeing it is so, God speakes not onely to Isai, when he commands him to seale vp the law and the testimonie: but in his person he cōmands the same to all the Ministers of his word, who should fight against the incredulitie of the people: and therefore it espe­cially belongs to Christ, who should be assayled of the Iewes with a more obstinate and furious rebellion, than all the Prophets were which were before him. Nay doe we not see that those who haue succeeded Israel, and call them­selues by the name of Christians, haue not onely reiected his Gospel, but doe also furiously set themselues against him? But howsoeuer the doctrine of the gospel be esteemed a stone of offence to those that are in the bosome of the Church, yet God will not haue it fall to ruine for all that; but will rather command it to be sealed vp among his Dis­ciples. And Christ in the name of all the Doctors, as their head, or rather as the onely Doctor who guides vs by their ministry, pronounceth that although we see such a desperate vnthankfulnesse in the world, yet there shall alwaies be some which shall yield themselues obedient vnto God. Thus you see how this place of Isaiah is fitly applied vnto Christ. And thereupon the Apostle gathers that we are one with him, because he associates vs with himselfe, when he offers himselfe, and vs together with him, to his father. For they who obey God vnder one and the same rule of faith, make also one selfe same bodie. Could any thing be said more properly for the praise of faith, than when we are made companions with the sonne of God, who exhorts vs by his example, and shewes vs the way? Wherefore if we followe the word of God, we knowe assuredly that we [Page 47]haue Christ for our guid: contrariwise those who turne from the obedience of the word, doe nothing at all belong to Christ. Is there any thing, I pray you, more desirable than this: to wit, that we consent with the Sonne of God? Now this consent and agreement consists in faith: it follows therefore, that by infidelitie we dissent from Christ, which is the most detestable thing that can be. This word children, which in many places of the scriptures signifies as much as seruants, is taken here for Disciples.

Which God hath giuen me:] In these words is noted out vnto vs the first cause of obedience, to wit, that God hath a­dopted vs to himselfe. Christ brings none to the father but those whome he hath giuen him. Now we know that this donation depends vpon the Eternal Election: because those whome the father hath ordained vnto life, those he com­mits to the tuition of his sonne, to the end he may conserue and keepe them. And that is it which he saith, Ioh. 6.37. All that the father hath giuen me, shall come vnto me. Therefore when we feele that we can submit our selues vnto God in obedience of faith, let vs learne to attribute it wholly vnto his mercie, because we would neuer otherwise haue sub­mitted our selues to be brought to him by the hand of Christ. Moreouer this doctrine doth furnish vs with singu­lar matter of Confidence; for who would tremble vnder the protection and safegard of Christ? who is he that hauing such a keeper would not boldly despise all danger? And tru­ly when Christ saith, Behold me, and my children, he fulfils that indeed, which he elsewhere promiseth, That he will not suf­fer any of those whome he hath receiued of his father to pe­rish. Ioh. 10.28. Lastly, let vs note from hence, that although the world doe furiously reiect the Gospel, yet notwithstan­ding the sheepe of Christ will alwaies acknowledge the voyce of their shepheard. Wherefore let vs not be dismaied, though almost all people and nations of the world doe re­iect it; seeing Christ will gather those that are giuen into his custodie. If the Reprobate plunge themselues into death by their impietie, the plants which God hath not planted are [Page 48]thereby plucked vp, Matth. 15.13. In the meane while let vs not doubt but that he knowes his own, and that the sal­uation of them all is sealed vp in him, to the ende none should escape him. The foundation of God remaines sure, and hath his seale, The Lord knowes who are his. 2. Tim. 2.19. Let vs then content our selues with this seale.

14 For as much as the childrē are partakers of flesh and blood, he also himselfe likewise tooke part with them that he might de­stroy through death, him that had the power of death, that is, the Diuell.

15 And that he might deliuer all them, which for feare of death were all their life time subiect vnto bondage.

FOr as much then as the children:] Verse 14 This is the conclusion of that which hath beene said; and therewithall he doth more fully giue a reason of that which he had but lightly touched before concerning the cause, why it behoued the sonne of God to take our flesh: to wit, that he might par­take of the same nature with vs, & in dying might redeeme vs from death. This place is worthy to be wel obserued: be­cause it not onely confirmes the truth of Christ his humane nature, but also shewes what fruit comes vnto vs thereby. The sonne of God, saith he, was made man; to the ende he might participate the same nature and condition with vs. Could he say any thing more to the purpose for the confirmation of our faith? for by this it appeares that he loues vs with an vn­speakable loue. The fulnesse of which loue consists in this, that he tooke vpon him our nature; that he might thereby subiect himselfe to the condition of death, for as he was God he could not die. Now howsoeuer he toucheth the fruit of his death but in fewe words, yet notwithstanding in these few he doth expresse the matter, with wonderfull life and efficacie: how? he hath so kept vs from the tyrannie of the diuell, that we are out of his danger: and hath so redee­med vs from death, that we need not now feare it any more. But because there is no word which hath not his weight, let [Page 49]vs yet a litle more diligently examine them. First this destru­ction of the deuill, whereof he speakes, shewes, that he hath now no more power ouer vs. For howsoeuer the deuill hath force and power still, The Diuels power weake­ned and limi­ted. and deuiseth daily to worke our de­struction, yet notwithstanding the power which he hath to hurt vs is weakened, or at the least limited. And doubtlesse it is a great consolation, to be assured that we haue to doe with such an enemie as hath no power ouer vs. Now that this is said in regard of vs; we may gather by the member following, which had the power of death, for the Apostle would hereby giue vs to vnderstand, that the deuill is de­stroyed, in as much as he raigned to our destruction. For this power is so called because of the effect; for it is deadly to vs, and brings forth destruction. He shewes then that not onely the tyrranie of Satan is destroyed by the death of Christ, but also that Satan himselfe hath receiued such a wound, that we need now no more to feare him, then if he were not at all. He speakes of the Deuill in the singular num­ber, according to the custome of the Scriptures: not that we should imagine there is no more but one, but because all of them together make one body, which cannot be as we know, without an head.

All those which for feare of death] This place doth very notably describe how miserable their state and condition is who stand in feare of death: Vers. 15 Death must needs be terri­ble to as many as looke vpon it without Christ. doubtlesse it must be very hor­rible and terrible to as many as look vpon it without Christ; because without him nothing is to be perceiued therein but cursednes. For from whence comes death but from the wrath of God inkindled against sinne? thence comes this bondage all our life long: that is to say, that anguish and continuall disquietnes wherein poore soules are impriso­ned. For the iudgement of God doth alwaies present it self before our eyes by the knowledge and guilt of sinne: now Christ by bearing our curse vpon him hath freed vs from this feare, when he tooke away whatsoeuer was fearefull in death. For howsoeuer necessitie bee laid vpon vs to passe through death, yet notwithstanding both in life and in [Page 50]death wee are at peace, VVe haue peace both in life and in death, because Christ is our guide. He hath profi­ted but little that hath not learned to con­temne death. and secure; because we haue Christ for our guide. And if any cannot quiet his minde by the contempt of death, let him know that he hath profited very little as yet in the faith of Christ. For as too seruile a feare proceedes from the not knowing the grace of Christ; so is it a certaine and sure note of infidelitie in whomsoeuer it is. Death in this place doth not onely signifie the separation of the soule from the bodie, but also the punishment which is sent vs of God in his anger: so as this word comprehends euen eternall damnation it selfe. For where the fault and transgressions stand in Gods sight vntaken away, there doth hell also forthwith present it selfe.

16 For he in no sort tooke on him the Angels nature, but he tooke on him the seede of Abraham.

17 Wherefore in all things, it behooued him to be made like vnto his brethren, that hee might be mercifull, and a faithfull high Priest in things concerning God, that hee might make re­conciliation for the sinnes of the people.

18 For in that he suffered and was tempted, he is able to suc­cour them that are tempted.

FOr in no sort] By this comparison hee further enlargeth the honour and benefit which Christ hath done vs in ta­king of our flesh, for hee neuer did so much for the Angels. In as much then as there was greater neede of speciall reme­die to repaire that exceeding fearefull ruine of mankinde, it was the good pleasure of the Sonne of God herein to mani­fest the excellent and incomparable pledge of the loue hee bare vs, which might not be communicated; no not to the Angels themselues. Now in that hee hath preferred vs be­fore the Angels, was it for any excellencie that was in vs a­boue them? No in no wise, but onely in regard of our mise­rie. Wherefore there is no cause why we should glorie as if we were more excellent than the Angels, vnlesse it be be­cause the heauenly Father hath shewed more mercie to vs than he hath done to them: the which wee haue good cause to confesse, to the end the Angels with admiration may be­hold from aboue so great bountie powred foorth vpon the [Page 51]earth. Whereas he saith in the present tence, he takes not, or tooke not, I referre it to the testimonie of the Scriptures, as if it did represent that before our eyes which had been before witnessed by the Prophets. Moreouer, this onely place suf­ficeth to ouerthrow Marcion, the Maniches, and all such railers, who denie Christ to be true man, begotten of mans seede. For if he onely bare the figure of a man; he often ap­peared so in old time vnder the forme of an Angell, and then where was the difference? But because it cannot be af­firmed that euen Christ was indeede a very Angell clothed with their nature: therefore it is rather said that hee tooke the nature of man, than of the Angels. The Apostle there­fore speakes of this nature, and shewes that Christ hauing taken flesh, was true man, so as now in two natures there is the vnitie of the person. For this place doth nothing at all fauour Nestorius, who forged two Christs, as if the Sonne of God had not been true man, but had onely dwelt in the flesh of man. We see that the Apostle had a farre other mea­ning. For hee meant to shew that wee haue a brother in the person of God, because of the participatiō of one selfe same nature with vs. Wherefore not contenting himselfe to call him man, he saith he was begotten of the seed of man. He ex­presly names the seed of Abraham, to get the more credit to that which he saith, because it is taken out of the Scripture.

Wherefore in all things it became him] We must consider two things in Christ his humane nature: that is to wit, Vers. 17 1 the essence of the flesh, and the affections. 2 And therefore the A­postle teacheth that he did not onely take flesh, but also all those affectiōs which are proper to men. He shewes also the fruites proceeding from thence, the which is the true doc­trine of faith: to wit, when wee feele in our selues the cause why the Sonne of God tooke our infirmities. For what is all the knowledge that wee can possibly haue, if wee feele not this fruite? In the next place hee teacheth that Christ was subiect to humane passions, to the end he might be a mercifull and a faithfull high Priest. The which words I expound thus, to the end he might bee mercifull, Mercifull. and so by consequence [Page 52]faithfull. For in an high Priest, whose office is to appease the wrath of God, to succour the miserable, to raise vp them that are falne, and to comfort the wearie; mercie is excee­ding necessarie, which the feeling of the same things beget­teth in vs. For it will neuer be that those who are alwaies at their ease, should bee touched with the anguish of another. For doubtlesse that which Virgil the Latine Poet saith, is ta­ken from the ordinarie custome of men.

Knowing what griefe is in mine heart,
I learne to pitie anothers smart.

Not that the Sonne of God had any neede to be instructed, or framed to a mercifull affection by hauing experience of our troubles and afflictions: but because wee could not be perswaded of his gentle and inclinable affection to helpe vs, vnlesse he had been exercised with our miseries. For this, as all the rest was done in regard of vs. As often then as we are pressed with any kinde of calamitie whatsoeuer, let vs remember that nothing befalles vs whereof the Sonne of God hath not experience in himselfe, that hee might haue compassion vpon vs: and let vs not doubt but that he will assist vs euen as if hee himselfe suffered with vs. This word faithfull, Faithfull. signifies truth and vprightnes. For it is the contra­rie to a dissembler, or one that dischargeth not the dutie of his office. The experience that Christ hath had of our mise­ries doth so bow him to compassion, that hee is carefull to entreate the helpe of God for vs. But what more? Intending to make the purgation and satisfaction for our sinnes, hee tooke our nature vpon him, to the end that we might haue in our flesh the price of our reconciliation: and last of all, that he might bring vs together with himself into the San­ctuarie of God, by the right of nature which we haue toge­ther in common with him. By the things which should bee done concerning God, hee meanes whatsoeuer tends and ap­pertaines to our reconciliation with God. Now because the first entrance in vnto God is by the liberty of faith, we haue neede of a Mediatour which may remoue all doubtings a­way from vs.

For in that he suffered, &c.] Verse 18 Being exercised with our af­flictions, saith he, hee is inclined to helpe vs: for temptation signifies in this place nothing but experience or triall: and to be able, is taken to be fit, inclined, or disposed.

CHAP. III.

1 Therefore holy brethren, partakers of the heauenly voca­tion, consider the Apostle and high Priest of our profession Christ Iesus:

2 Who was faithfull to him that hath appointed him, euen as Moses was in all his house.

3 For this man is counted worthie of more glorie than Mo­ses, in as much as he which hath builded the house, hath more ho­nour than the house.

4 For euery house is builded of some man, and he that hath built all things is God.

5 Now Moses verily was faithfull in all his house as a ser­uant, for a witnes of the things which should be spoken after.

6 But Christ is as the Sonne ouer his own house; whose house we are, if we hold fast that confidence and that reioycing of that hope vnto the end.

WHerefore holy brethren,] He closeth vp and con­cludeth the former doctrine with a very pro­fitable exhortation: to wit, ye the Iewes shuld be attentiue, and bethinke themselues well in acknowledging both what Christ is, and how great he is. For when he called him heretofore the Doctor, and soueraigne high Priest; in those few words he made cō ­parison betweene him, Moses, and Aaron: now he compre­hends both the members. Two offices of Christ. For hee adornes him with two titles, because he also hath two offices, and preheminences in the Church of God. Moses performed the office of a Prophet and Teacher; Aaron the office of the high Priest: but both estates were giuen to Christ. Wherefore if we will [Page 54]receiue him as we ought, we must consider what he is: we must I say, cloath him with his vertue and power, least in stead of him we take some vaine shadow and imagination of Christ. First of all, this word Consider, hath his weight: for it signifies that diligent attention is to be giuen to this mat­ter, because it cannot be contemned without a fearefull pu­nishment ensuing: and then that the true knowledge of Christ sufficeth to chase away, yea to cause all darknes and errors to vanish Now to the end he might quicken them vp to a more earnest affection and studie; he admonisheth thē of their own vocation; as if he should say, God hath not done you a small fauour in calling you to his kingdome. It remaines then that you fixe your eies vpon Christ, The only way to secure the calling of the faithfull, is to shroud them­selues vnder the wings of Christ. as vpon your leader and guide in the way. For the calling of the faithfull can no other way be secured, vnlesse they wholly gather themselues vnder Christ. And therefore let vs not i­magine that this is said onely to the Iewes, but that it is a generall doctrine propounded to all those who desire to come to the kingdome of God. Let such looke diligently to Iesus, because he is the onely master of our faith, & hath confirmed it by his sacrifice. For Confession is here taken for faith. And it is as much as if he had said, that the faith which we seeme to hold is vaine and vnprofitable, vnlesse it be ap­plied to Christ.

Who was faithfull.] Verse 2 This is a Commendation of the Apo­stleship of Christ; to the ende that the faithfull might rest thēselues securely in him. Now he commends it two waies: 1 first because the heauenly father hath ordained him for our teacher: 2 secōdly, in that Christ for his part hath faithfully ex­ecuted the office enioyned him of his father. These two things are alwaies necessarie to get authoritie to the do­ctrine. A lawfull cal­ling. For God only ought to be heard, as the whole scrip­tures doth testifie. For this cause Christ protesteth, that the doctrine which he brings is not his, but his fathers: Ioh. 7.16. And in another place he saith, he that receiueth me, recei­ueth him that sent me. Luk. 9.48. For we speake of Christ, who as he is cloathed with our flesh, is the minister and seruant [Page 55]of God, to declare those things vnto vs which are giuen him in charge. Now as the calling of Christ is of God, Faithfulnesse in performing the worke of this calling. so besides that, he doth also carrie himselfe faithfully and sin­cerely in the same; which is a thing requisite in all true mi­nisters, to the end they may haue audience and authoritie in the Church. Now if both are to be found in Christ, then assuredly we cannot despise them, but God in all of them must of necessitie be despised. As Moses was. Leauing a little his speech of the Priesthood, he comes now to deale with the Apostleshippe. For although the coueuant of God containes two parts: to wit, the setting forth of the doctrine, and the reall confirmation thereof, if we may so speake: the exact perfection of the Couenant should not otherwise be fulfilled of Christ, vnlesse both of them doe appertaine vn­to him. The Author of this Epistle then hauing made men­tion of the one, and the other, he hath also at the last by a briefe exhortation quickened vp the faithfull to attention. But he entreth now into a more large treatise, and fuller handling of these things, and beginneth at the charge and office of the Doctour: therefore also he compares him with Moses onely. Whereas he saith in all his house, it may be re­ferred to Moses: but I had rather referre it to Christ, to the end he may be said to be faithfull to his father in the whole gouernment of his house. From whence it followes that none are to be accounted of the Church of God, but those who acknowledge Christ.

For this man is counted worthy, &c.] Least he might be thought to make Moses equall with Christ, he shewes how he is much more excellent then Moses, which he prooues by two arguments, for Moses was so appointed ouer the Church, that himselfe was alwaies a part and member ther­of: But Christ beeing the master builder, 1 was farre aboue the building. Moses in gouerning of others, was also go­uerned himselfe, because he was but a seruant: 2 but Christ be­cause he is the sonne obtained the principalitie. It is an vsu­all metaphor both common and familiar in the scripture, to call the Church the house of God, 1. Tim. 3.15. Now be­cause [Page 56]it is composed and built of the faithfull, therefore e­uery of them is called a liuing stone. 1. Pet. 2.5. and some­times also vessels and instruments by which the house is decked and garnished. 2. Tim. 2.20. There is not any one which is so absolute ouer others, that himselfe in the meane while should not be a member and comprehended vnder the bodie. God onely is he which buildeth, and ought to be preferred farre aboue his building and worke. Now God dwelleth in Christ, so as whatsoeuer is said of God, apper­taines vnto him. Obiection. If any shall obiect and say, that Christ also is part of the building, because he is the foundation of it, in regard he is our brother, and hath societie with vs; moreo­uer in that he is not the master workman, but himselfe also was formed of God: Answere. we can easily giue a solution: to wit, that our faith is so built vpon him, that he notwithstanding is established the head ouer vs: that he is so our brother, that yet he is also our Lord: that he is so formed of God, beeing man, that yet notwithstanding he quickeneth and restoreth all things by his spirit, as he is the eternall God. The Scrip­ture vseth diuers Metaphors and similitudes to declare what the grace of Christ is towards vs: but there is not any one place that doth diminish ought from his honour, whereof the Apostle now speakes. For this is the point; all ought to be gouerned and made subiect, because all must be vnder the head: Christ is therefore exempt from this condition, because he is the head. Obiection. If it be againe obiected that Moses was no lesse a master builder than S. Paul, who giues him­selfe this title, Answer. 1. Cor. 3.10. I answer, that this name is indeed attributed to the Prophets and Teachers, but improperly: for they are but organes and instruments; yea dead instru­ments, vnlesse the Lord from heauen do secretly inspire the efficacie of his spirit. And furthermore that they so labour to edifie & build the Church, that themselues also must come to be framed into the building, as beeing part of the same: but it is farre otherwise with Christ. For he hath alwaies built the Church by the power of his own spirit. Moreouer he hath alwaies bene the cheife, yea the highest, farre aboue [Page 57]the common order of others; for, he was so the true temple of God, that therewithall himselfe was the God which dwelt in it.

And he that hath built all things, &c.] Verse 4 Although the words may be stretched to the creation of the whole world, yet notwithstanding I restraine them to the present matter, so as we vnderstand, that nothing was done in the Church, that ought not to be acknowledged to proceed from the power of God. For it is he onely who hath made it with his hand: Psal. 87.5. And S. Paul saith of Christ, that he is the head by whom all the bodie linked and coupled together by eue­ry ioynt for the furnishing thereof, taketh increase accor­ding to the operation, in the measure of euery part. Eph. 4.15. For this cause he saith often, that the fruit of his ministry is a worke of God. To be short, if we iudge as the truth is, although God doe vse men as the meanes to build his Church, yet it is he onely notwithstanding which doth per­fect al things: for the instrument diminisheth nothing from the praise of the workeman.

Now Moses verily was faithfull, &c.] Verse 5 This is the second difference, the doctrine was committed to Moses, but so, as he himselfe still was subiect thereunto as well as others. But howsoeuer Christ tooke vpon him the forme of a ser­uant, yet he is Lord and Master notwithstanding, vnder whom euery knee is to bow: Philip. 2.10. He was appointed heire ouer all things, as we heard in the first chapter of this Epistle. For a witnes of the things, &c. I expound these words plainely thus, Moses as an Herauld and a publisher of this doctrine, which should be manifested to the auntient peo­ple according as the time would beare; did also therewith­all giue witnesse to the Gospel, for the preaching whereof the fit time was not yet come. For truely it is very apparant that this perfection of wisdome which is contained in the Gospel, is the ende and accomplishment of the law: and it seemes that the Greeke word which is in the future tence, which we translate should be spoken; or which were to be spo­ken, requireth this exposition. Now the sumine is, that Mo­ses [Page 58]did faithfully teach the people those things which God had giuen him in charge; yet so, as a certaine measure was limited, beyond which it was not lawfull for him to passe. God hath heretofore spoken vnto vs diuers waies, and at sundrie times by the Prophets, yet he deferred the cleere re­uelation of the Gospel to the fulnesse of time.

Whose house we are.] Verse 6 The Apostle Paul in the 1. to the Ro­mans, after he had told them in his Preface, that he was ap­pointed the Apostle of the Gentiles, addeth in the 6. verse, that the Romans to whom he wrote were of the number of them, and all to the ende he might obtaine authoritie with them. Euen so now doth the author of this Epistle, exhort the faithfull Iewes, who had made profession of Christ, to perseuere in the faith; to the end they might haue place in the houshold of God. He had said before that the house of God was vnder the rule of Christ: and now he addes this ad­monition to very good purpose, telling them that they shal haue a place in this house of God, if so be they obey Christ. But in regard they had before begunne to receiue the Go­spel, he ioynes this condition, if they holdfast that confidence, and that reioycing, Hope, the con­stancie of faith &c. for I take this word hope for faith. And truely hope is nothing els but the constancie of faith. He puts assurance and reioycing, the better to expresse the vertue of it. Staggerers, no true beleeuers. And from hence we gather that those who faintly and staggeringly doe consent vnto the Gospel, are nothing lesse then true beleeuers. For faith cannot be without a quiet and peaceable minde, Two effects of faith. which brings forth a constant boldnes of reioycing. For faith indeede hath alwais these two effects ioyned with it, to wit boldnesse, and reioycing: as we haue said in the fift to the Romans, and in the third to the Ephesians. To which, as all the doctrine of the Papists is contrarie, so if they had none other false doctrine but this alone; it would rather destroy the Church of God, then build it vp. For they not onely darken the truth, by their inuentions, but o­penly condemne this confidence, whereof the Apostle speakes, of presumption. As if it were not lawfull for a man to hold that he is consecrated to be the temple of God. [Page 59]And besides, what assurednes of confidence and boldnes could wee haue thereof, when men know not what to be­leeue? Now this infolden faith, which they haue forged of their owne heads, is nothing els but a license to wander and stray out of the right way. Wee are therefore admonished out of this place alwaies to profit and to goe forward euen till death, because our whole life is but a race.

7 Wherefore (as the holy Ghost saith, Psal. 95.8. chap. 4.7. to day if ye shall heare his voyce,

8 Harden not your hearts, as in the prouocation, Numb. 14.22. Exod. 17.2.7. according to the day of temptation in the wildernes,

9 Where your fathers tempted me, prooued me, and saw my workes fourtie yeeres long.

10 Wherefore I was grieued with that generation and said, They erre euer in their heart, neither haue they knowne my waies.

11 Therefore I sware in my wrath, if they shall enter into my rest.)

12 Take heede, brethren, least at any time there be in any of you an euill heart, and vnfaithfull to depart away from the li­uing God:

13 But exhort one another daily, while it is called to day, least any of you be hardened through the deceitfulnes of sinne.

HE still exhorts them to obey Christ in his word. And to the end his exhortation might haue the more weight, he confirmes it by the testimonie of Dauid. For when hee was to touch them to the quicke, it was needfull hee should presse them in the person of another, least hee might offend them. If he had plainly reproched the infidelitie of their fa­thers, they would not so willingly haue heard him: but in that he sets Dauid as it were to tell them of it, the matter is so much the lesse odious. Now his drift in few words is this, that as God from the beginning would that his voice should bee obeyed, and could not beare stubbornnes, and obstinacie, but did sharply punish it; so also at this day if we [Page 60]proue not good schollers vnder him, he will punish our ob­stinacie no lesse seuerely than hee did theirs. Moreouer, the words depend one vpon another till you come to the 12. verse. To the end therefore the scope of the text may the better be vnderstood, the words which begin at the seuenth verse to the twelfth, the first of them being excepted, must be enclosed with a parenthesis. But let vs now come to the handling of euery point in order.

As saith the holy Ghost.] Vers. 7 This serues to moue their atten­tion more than if hee had alleaged Dauids name. And it is good and profitable also to accustome our selues to such manner of speaking, to the end we may be put in mind that the words which are cited out of the bookes of the Pro­phets, are not of men, but of God. Now because this sen­tence, To day if ye will heare his voyce, is a part of the verse that went before: some haue not translated it amisse; Would to God you would this day heare his voyce. It is certaine that Dauid hauing called the Iewes the people of God and the sheepe of his pasture, doth from thence foorthwith in­ferre, that it is good reason they should heare the voyce of God. For speaking there to them whom hee had called to sing the praises of God, and to celebrate his goodnes, he by and by admonisheth them that obedience is the principall seruice that he requireth, and that he preferres it farre before all sacrifices. The first point is then that they should obey the word of God.

Harden not your hearts.] Verse 8 By these words is shewed that our rebellion against God proceeds from none other roote than from a voluntary wickednes: None can sof­ten the hard­nes of our harts but God only. to wit, when we shut the gate against his grace. True it is that we haue already hearts of stone, and euery one of vs hath brought this hardnes with vs from our mothers wombe, neither is there any but God onely who can soften and correct them. Notwithstanding whereas wee repell the voyce of God, we doe it with a wit­ting and willing obstinacie, and not by any other instiga­tion: and whether this be a truth or no, let euery mans con­science testifie. Wherefore the holy Ghost doth iustly re­proue [Page 61]al vnbeleeuers, for opposing themselues against God and for that they themselues are masters and authors of their owne obstinacie: least they should lay the fault vpon some bodie els. Notwithstanding it cannot bee gathered from hence, that on the contrarie the libertie to frame our hearts to the obedience of God is in our power. For it will alwaies necessarily come to passe vnto men to harden their owne hearts, till such time as another heart be giuen them from heauen. For as we are by nature enclined to malice, so we will neuer cease to resist God, till such time as we be ta­med and brought vnder by his hand.

As in the prouocation,] It was needfull for two causes that the disobedience of their fathers should be remembred vn­to them. 1 For as they were fondly puffed vp with the digni­tie of their race, so often times they followed their fathers vices in stead of vertues, and tooke their example for a suf­ficient excuse. Moreouer, 2 hearing that their fathers had bin so disobedient to God, they might the better know hereby that this admonition was not superfluous. Now because these two reasons had place at that time when the Apostle liued, he doth therefore willingly fit that to the present oc­casion which had been long agoe spoken by Dauid; to the end they also to whom hee addresseth his speech might not bee giuen too much to the following of their fathers steps. From hence we may gather a generall doctrine, to wit, how farre we ought to follow our fathers: that is to say, euen so farre foorth as their authoritie doth not turne vs from the onely one God. For if euer any fathers were worthie of ho­nour, the Iewes doubtlesse obtained the first place among others. How farre the example of our forefathers is to be followed, And yet notwithstanding Dauid giueth expresse charge to their children, to take heede how they grew like them. And for mine owne part I make no doubt but he hath regard here to that which is written in the 17. of Exodus. For Dauid doth here vse two words, which Moses shewes were giuen to the place, because of that which happened: to wit, Meriba, which signifies contention or strife: and Massah, which signifies tentation: for they tempred God, [Page 62]saying, that he was not in the middest of them, because they lacked water, Exod. 17.7. and also strife, because they con­tended with Moses. Now although they had shewed many examples of their incredulitie, Dauid notwithstanding chu­seth this principally, because it was the most memorable a­mong many others: as also because that according to the order of time it followed all the rest of the temptations, at leastwise for the greater part, as wee may see by the fourth booke of Moses called Numbers, where there is a continual succession of many temptations from the 11. chapter to the 20. Now this is written in the twentieth; which circum­stances make the offence much more hainous. For what in­gratitude is it that hauing had experience of the power of God, they should yet continue to contend and striue so ma­lapertly with him, and should giue no credit to him at all? He hath then put one kinde for all. This word to tempt, is taken in the ill part, as we vse to say, to distrust with despite. For although God had many times succoured them, not­withstanding forgetting all he had done for them, they as­ked in scorne where his vertue and power was become?

And proued me, Verse 9 and saw my workes.] This member must be thus resolued; notwithstanding that they had prooued me, and seene my workes. For he aggrauates the crime of their wickednesse, because they had profited no better, though they had been taught by so many experiences. For it was a marucilous beastlines that they made none account of Gods power which was so sure and approoued. That which followeth of fourtie yeeres, is ioyned in the Psalme with that which is said by consequence. For we know that the Apostles in alleaging the Scriptures had regard rather to the substance, than to be curious about words. And God himselfe also when hee complaines that this people vexed him by the space of fourtie yeeres, it was because so many benefits as hee had bestowed vpon them, had not been a­uailable to bring them vnder. For although God shewed himselfe good euery day euen to those which were vnwor­thie of it, yet they would not cease to rise vp in rebellion [Page 63]against him: From thence proceeded the continuall wrath of God, as if he should say, they haue not prouoked me once, or twice; but haue continued their naughtinesse four­tie yeares long. Generation, signifieth an age, or the men of an age.

And said, they erre alwaies, &c.] Ver. 10 It is the sentence of God by which he pronounceth that they were of a reprobate minde: and he addes the reason; to wit, because they knewe not his waies. In a word, he holds them for a desperate people, because they had lost both vnderstanding, & heart: and he here takes to him the person of a man, who hauing a long space made triall of his seruants, findes them at the last to be no better than obstinately rebellious. For he saith, they erre alwaies, because he saw no hope at all of amend­ment.

Therefore I sware in my wrath.] Verse 11 This is the punishment of their folly and rage, to wit, to be depriued of their promised rest. Moreouer the Lord calls that land his rest, in the which they should haue rested. For they had beene straungers and pilgrimes in the land of Egypt, they wandred through the desert: but the land of Canaan, should haue beene their per­petuall inheritance, according to the promise. And God calles it his rest, in respect of the promise: because we neuer finde a firme and stable rest, till we come where we are ga­thered by the hand of God. Now the right of the sure pos­session was grounded vpon this that God had said to Abra­ham, I will giue this land to thy seed, Gen. 12.7. In that God sweareth; the heinousnesse of their sinne is so much the more aggrauated with the greater vehemencie. For it is a signe that the wrath of God is the more inflamed. They shall neuer enter, this is a kind of oath, in which somewhat must be supplied, as an Imprecation, or some such like thing when men speake: but when God himselfe speaketh, it is as much as if he should say, let me not be taken to be true of my word, or let me not hence forth be beleeued if it be not so. Notwithstanding these manners of speaking, wherein somewhat is wanting, admonisheth vs to feare, and tremble; [Page 64]least we presume lightly to sweare, as commonly men are wont vpon euery trifling occasion, euen with horrible exe­crations.

But as touching the present text, we are not to thinke that they were then first of all cast out from entring into the land, when they tempted him in Riphidim. They were ex­cluded long before: that is, from the time that the spies brought them ill tidings, whereby they withdrew their af­fections from passing ouer into that land. God therefore doth not say here, that this tentation was the first cause for the which they were put by, from enioying of Canaan; but it signifies that they could scarcely be humbled by any cor­rection, but still added sinne vpon sinne. And by this means he shewes that they had well deserued to be so rigorously dealt withall by him, because they ceased not to augment his wrath more and more by their transgressions: as if he should say, this is the generation to whom I haue denied the inioying of the land which I had promised them; who for fortie full yeares together haue shewed themselues still to be foolishly obstinate by innumerable offences.

Brethren take heed least there be in any of you, Verse 12 &c.] I had ra­ther retain that which the Apostle hath put word for word; an euill heart of infidelitie: then to seeke a periphrasis. By this he signifies that infidelitie shall be ioyned with peruerse ma­lice, if so be after they haue tasted of Christ, they shall turne away from his faith. For he speakes to them who had alrea­die learned the rudiments of Christianitie. And therefore he by and by addes, to depart away. For a man cannot reuolt but he must needs break his faith. He also immediatly shews the remedie to preuent this falling away: to wit, if they ex­hort one another. Faith must of­ten be repai­red, beat, and a vakened: or els it will fall, wa [...]e cold, and become arousy. For as we are all naturally inclined to that which is euill, so we haue all neede of diuers helpes to keepe vs in the feare of God. If our faith be not often repaired it will fall: if it be not heat, it will waxe cold; if it be not awa­kened it will fall a sleepe. He would then that they should whet vp one another by mutuall admonitions, least Sathan by his subtile meanes should get within their hearts, and by [Page 65]his secret deceipts should turne them away from God. Which manner of speech is to be well considered. For we fall not into this mischeife, to resist God at the first choppe: but Satan makes his entrie vpon vs by little and little, till he get vs snared in his nets; and then beeing blinded, we en­ter into an open rebellion.

This euil therefore is to be remedied betimes: for there is not one of vs but is subiect to this danger; because none are so easily deceiued. Now from this falling away, pro­ceedes the hardening of the heart. We may see by this how necessarie it is to be continually prouoked and stirred vp by exhortations. For the Apostle not onely commaunds all in generall to take heede, but he would they should be care­full in such wise of the saluation of euery member, that by their negligeēe they should not suffer any one of thē to pe­rish, who were once called. And herein he performes the office of a good shepheard and pastor, who ought so to watch for the saluation of the whole flocke, that in the mean time, there doe not any one of his sheepe perish for want of his care.

Whilest it is called to day.] Verse 13 Now he more neerely applies this sentence of Dauid to his purpose. For he shewes that this same to day, whereof mention is made in the Psalme, ought not to be onely restrained to Dauids time, but also comprehends all that time wherein it pleaseth God to speake vnto vs. Wherefore euen as often, and as many times as it pleaseth him to open his sacred mouth to teach vs, let vs remember this wel, To day if ye will heare his voice. Accor­ding to which, S. Paul teacheth, that the acceptable time in which God heares vs, is whilest the gospel is preached; then is the day of saluation wherein he will be ready to succour, 2. Cor. 6.2. Now we ought to take this opportunitie: It is dange­rous to neglect opportunitie. for if by our negligence we suffer the same to ouerslippe vs, it wil be in vaine to bewaile the losse of it, when it shall be taken away from vs. And therefore Christ saith, walke whilest yee haue the light, the night will quickly approch: Ioh. 12.35. Thus then this word whilst, doth couertly shew that our op­portunitie [Page 66]will not last alwaies, if wee bee slacke to followe God when he calles. God now knockes at our doore: if we open not vnto him, it will come to passe that hee also will shut the gate of his kingdome against vs. To be short, the sighes of those who despise that grace which is now offred vnto them, will be all too late. Therefore, seeing it is vn­knowne whether God will continue his call till to morrow, let vs not delay. Hee calles to day, let vs by and by answere him. For there is no faith, but where there is this readines to hearken and obey.

14 For we are made partakers of Christ, if we keepe sure vn­to the end, that beginning, wherewith we are vpholden.

15 So long as it is said, Psal. 95.8. Numb. 14.37. to day if ye heare his voyce, harden not your hearts, as in the prouocation.

16 For some when they heard prouoked him to anger, howbeit not all of them that came out of Egypt by Moses.

17 But with whom was he displeased fourtie yeeres? was he not displeased with them that sinned, whose carkesses fell in the wildernes?

18 And to whom sware he that they should not enter into his rest, but vnto them that obeyed not?

19 So we see they could not enter, because of vnbeliefe.

For we are made &c.] Verse 14 He praiseth them for that they had begun well: but least vnder colour of the grace they had receiued, they should giue the bridle to the carelesnes of the flesh, he saith they haue need of perseuerance. For there are some who hauing tasted of the Gospell but with the edge of the lip, It is not enough to make good beginnings, vn­lesse we goe on therein to the end. yet as though they were come to the last degree of perfection, thinke they haue no neede to goe any further forward in profiting. And so it comes to passe that they doe not onely faint in the midst of their course, yea almost at their very first entrance, but they also turne head to runne the contrarie way. It is true this obiection hath a faire shew, what would ye more, are we not come to Christ? But if it be so that by faith we possesse him, we must perseuere still in it, [Page 67]to the end our possession may be for euer. Thus then Christ hath giuen vs the enioying of himself vnder this condition, that wee hold fast so great a benefit till death, euen by the same faith by which wee were admitted into the participa­tion of him.

Therefore he saith, the beginning, signifying thereby that faith is onely begun. Seeing the Greeke word Hypostasis sometimes signifieth assurance, it may be taken in this signi­fication. Neuerthelesse, I thinke it not from the purpose to vse the word substance, as some others haue translated: al­though I doe interpret it a little otherwise. For others think that faith is called by that name, because the whole being of man without it, is nothing els but vanitie: but I say it is because we rest in it: there being none other stay whereup­on wee can stand. And this epithite sure, agreeth thereunto very well. For we shall be sure and out of danger of falling, if so be wee be built vpon faith. The summe then is, that it behoueth that the faith whereof wee haue but the begin­ning, doe still goe on forward, firmely and constantly vnto the end.

So long as it is said, &c.] Verse 15 He signifies that the occasion to profit neuer failes as long as we liue, because God calles vs euery day. For although faith answeres to the preaching of the word; so euen as the vse of preaching is continuall all the course of our life, there must bee also continuall goings forward and increases in faith. These words, so long as it is said, doe import as much as if hee should haue said; Seeing it is so that God ceaseth not to speak, it shall not be enough once to haue receiued the Gospell with a cheerefull readi­nes, if we yeeld not our selues obedient, perseuering in the same teachablenes day by day euen vnto the end.

For some when they heard, &c.] Dauid speakes so of the Fa­thers, as if all those which were of that time had been vnbe­leeuers. Yet no doubt but there were some mingled among the wicked, that had the feare of God. The Apostle doth re­count the same; but yet it is with a little asswaging of that which was spoken somewhat sharply by Dauid, to the end [Page 68]we might know that the word is propounded generally to all, that all might obey with one consent: and that incredu­litie is iustly to be condemned in all people, when the bodie is rent and shiuered by the reuolt of the greater part. More­ouer whereas hee saith, that some prouoked him to wrath, al­though the number of them were farre greater than of the others; hee doth it not onely least the word should be too gaulling, but also to the end he might encourage the Iewes to follow those who beleeued. As if he should say, As God on the one side forbids you to follow the incredulitie of your fathers: so yet on the other side he proposeth the ex­ample of them that were godly, that their faith might be for you to follow. Thus he mitigates his speech, which other­wise might haue seemed somewhat too hard, if hee should haue commaunded them wholy to turne from the way of their fathers. To come out of Egypt by Moses, signifies by the hand, and vnder the conduct of Moses: because he was the minister of their deliuerance. Now this is a close compari­son betweene the benefit of God conferred vnto them by Moses, and of the participation of Christ, whereof hee spake before.

But with whom was he displeased fourtie yeeres? Ver. 17 His mea­ning is that God is neuer angrie with his people but vpon iust causes: as S. Paul sheweth in the tenth chapter of the first Epistle to the Corint. God is neuer angrie without iust cause. 5.6. So then looke how many cha­stisements we reade of to bee come from God vpon the an­cient people, so many hainous transgressions shall we finde whereby they prouoked the vengeance of God to come vpon them. Alwaies bearing this in minde, that infidelitie was the chiefe and capitall sinne of all others. For howsoe­uer he puts it in the last place, Vers. 19 yet his meaning is that it was the first cause of the curse. And to say the truth, after they once fell to infidelitie, they neuer ceased to adde sinne vnto sinne, and from one offence to fall into another, so drawing still down vpon themselues new scourges from God. Those then who by their distrust had reiected the possession of the land which had bin offered them, followed their owne ob­stinacie, [Page 69]now in coueting, now in murmuring, now in who­ring, now in prophaning and polluting themselues with su­perstitions, euen till their frowardnesse was fully made ma­nifest.

This vnbeleefe then which they shewed from the begin­ning, hindred them to receiue & enioy the benefit of God, because the contempt of the word did alwaies prouoke thē to sinne. And as by their incredulitie they first deserued that God should depriue them of that rest which he had promi­sed them: so also all the sinnes they committed afterward, proceeded from the same roote. Obiection. But here a question may be asked, to wit, whether Moses and Aaron, and such as they were, are comprehended within this number. Answere. I answer, that the Apostle rather speakes of the whole bodie in generall, than of euery member in particular. It is certaine that there were many of the faithfull, who either were not inwrapped in the common impietie, or if they were, yet they did by & by repent them of it. As for Moses; his faith was only sha­ken once, and that but for a moment. Likewise there is in the words of the Apostle, the figure called Synecdoche; which is, when a part is taken for the whole, or the whole for a part: which figure the scripture often vseth, as often as there is question of a multitude, or of the bodie of a people.

CHAP. IV.

1 Let vs feare "therefore, "or, then. least at any time by forsaking the promise of entring into his rest, any of you should seeme to be depriued.

2 For vnto vs was the Gospel preached, as also vnto them, but the word that they heard, profited not them, because it was not mixed with faith in those that heard it.

LEt vs feare then.] Verse 1 He concludes that it behooues the Iews, to whom he writes, to feare, The care of a good pastor. least they be de­priued of the blessing which is offered them. And [Page 70]againe he saith, least any of you, signifying that his affection is to bring them all to God, not one of them accepted: for such is the care of a good Pastor; that whilest he studieth for the good of the whole flocke, he is likewise watchfull ouer euery particular sheepe, that not any one of them through his default doe perish. Yea euerie one of vs ought to haue the same care ouer one another, and to feare for other mens sakes, as well as for our owne. Now this feare which is here recommended vnto vs, Feare ought not to take a­way the assu­rance of faith. is not to take away from vs the assu­rance of faith; but it is to quicken vs to such great care, that by our negligence we should not become drousie. We must feare then, not to bring vs to wauering, or distrust; as if we were vncertaine of a good euent; but least the grace of God which is offered vs, become vnprofitable vnto vs. Now when he saith, that by forsaking the promise, we should seeme to be depriued, he signifies, that none are depriued of it, but they who putting grace away from them, haue first renoun­ced the same. For it is so farre off that God should repent him of his well doing, that on the contrarie he neuer cea­seth to inlarge his gifts continually, if so be there be not a contempt of his calling. This word then, signifies, that the falls of others ought to instruct vs to humilitie and vigilan­cie: as also S. Paul saith, These are fallen by vnbeleefe; be not thou high minded but feare. Rom. 11.20.

For vnto vs was the Gospel preached.] Ver. 2 He admonisheth vs that the very same doctrine by which God at this day calles vs vnto himselfe, and that which he ordained for the Fathers in old time, is all one. How so? to the end we might learne that the calling of God will profit vs no more than it did them, if we ratifie not the same by faith. This then is added by way of concession or granting: very true it is that the Gospel is preached to vs; but least we should bragge there­of in vaine, he replies straight way, and tels vs that the vn­beleeuers to whom God did this honour, to make them partakers of so great a benefit, yet notwithstanding felt no fruit at all by it: and in like manner, that we shall feele no blessing by it, vnlesse we receiue it by faith. For this cause he [Page 71]repeates hearing twice; Hearing pro­sits no [...], vnlesse faith be ioyned with it. to the end we might know that hea­ring will not profit vs, though we haue the Gospel preach­ed, vnlesse faith be ioyned therewithall. Moreouer here we are to note the mutuall relation which is betweene the word and faith: which is such, as the one cannot be separa­ted from the other; for if faith be separate from the word, or the word from faith, neither of both will profit: not that the efficacie of the word depends on vs. For let the whole world be a liar, yet God notwithstanding which cannot lie, Faith giues the word entrance in respect of vs. will not cease therefore to be true. Tit. 1.2. But the word brings forth his fruite no other way in respect of vs, but when faith giues it entrance.

It is the power of God indeede to saluation; yet to none but the beleeuers. The righteousnesse of God is reuealed therein, but it is from faith to faith. Rom. 1.16. The word prea­ched is the po­wer of God to saluation: yet none feele the fruit but such as beleeue. Thus it ap­peares that we must alwaies conclude, that the word, if it be considered in it selfe, and of it owne nature hath his efficacie and is of power to saue men: but they onely which beleeue doe feele the fruit. But as touching the first member, where I said, that there is no faith, where the word wanteth, & that he who goeth about to make such a diuorce, wholy quēch­eth faith, and brings it to nothing: it is a thing worthy to be noted. For hereby it appears, No faith with­out a promise. that faith can be in none but in the children of God, to whom only the promise of adopti­on is offered. For what faith haue the diuels, to whom there is no promise made of saluation? what faith also haue all wicked men, who know not what the word of God is? wherefore hearing must alwaies goe before faith: and that in such wise, that we well consider that it is God and not man that speaketh.

3 For we which haue beleeued, doe enter into rest, as he said to the other, As I haue sworne in my wrath, if they shall enter into my rest: although the workes were finished from the founda­tion of the world.

4 For he spake in a certaine place of the seuenth day on this wise, And God did rest the seuenth day from all his works. Deut. 5.14. Gen. 2.2.

[Page 72] 5 And in this place againe, if they shall enter into my rest.

6 Seeing therefore it remaineth, that some must enter there­into, and they to whom it was first preached, entred not therein for their vnbeleefs sake:

7 Againe he appointed in Dauid a certaine day, by Today, after so long a time saying as it is said, This day if ye will heare his voyce, harden not your hearts.

8 For if Iesus had giuen them rest, then would he not after this haue spoken of another day.

9 There remaineth therefore a rest to the people of God.

10 For he that is entred into his rest, hath also ceased from his own works, as God did from his.

HE beginnes now to polish and to amplifie the place of Dauid, which he had alleadged; hitherunto he hath handled it according to the letter, as they say; that is, in the own naturall sense: but now he amplifies it by way of dec­king or polishing of it. Therefore now he rather alludes to the words of Dauid, than making any interpretation of them. In the tenth to the Romans, S. Paul amplifies a place of Moses two wayes. The place is, Say not, who shall ascend vp into heauen, &c. neither is there any inconuenience, if in applying the scripture to that which is presently handled, one doe illustrate by way of similitudes that which was spoken more plainely. Now the summe of all these wordes is, that whereas God threatened in the Psalme, to depriue them of his rest, the same threatning also appertaines vnto vs: for at this day we are called by the Gospel to a certaine kind of rest. The chiefest difficultie of this place is from hence, that many haue offered violence vnto it, to drawe it to another sense: for the Apostle hath none other meaning, but by setting of a certaine rest before vs, to spurre vs on forward to the desire of it; as also to pricke vs on with feare, that we be not turned aside from inioying of it through infidelitie. In the meane while he shewes, that the rest into which we now enter, is of much greater excellency than that of the land of Canaan. But let vs declare the whole matter orderly.

For wee which haue beleeued, &c.] Vers. 3 It is an argument taken from the nature of things contrarie. Infidelitie onely is it that hindreth vs to enter: it followes then that by faith we doe enter thereinto. For wee must call to minde what hath been said alreadie, to wit, that God being angrie with the vnbeleeuers, swaie that they should not enter into his rest. Those then enter into it, who are not hindred by infidelitie: prouided that God doe call them. But by speaking in the first person, hee drawes them after a more sweete way or meanes; separating them out of the number of strangers. Although the workes were finished from the foundation of the world. To make a definition what our rest is, hee sends vs to Moses, that is to wit, that God rested from all his workes by and by after the creation of the world: and lastly hee con­cludes, that the true rest of the faithfull which shall endure for euer, is, when they are conformed vnto God. Now as it is indeede the chiefe felicitie of man to bee vnited with his God: so ought it also to be the first end vnto which all en­terprises, deliberations, and workes should be referred. To what end all our enterprises, deliberations, and vvorkes ought to be re­ferred. He proues this, because God who is said to haue rested, denied his rest long time after to the vnbeleeuers: which he should haue done in vaine and without cause, if thereby he had not been willing that the faithfull should also rest after his ex­ample. And therefore in the sixt verse he saith, Verse 6 It remaineth that some must enter into it: for if it be a punishment (as hath been alreadie said) of infidelitie not to enter: the entrance then is open to the beleeuers. But that which he by and by after addes hath some more difficultie, to wit, that another day is assigned vnto vs in the Psalme, because the first were excluded. Now it seemes that Dauids words haue no such meaning. For they onely signifie that God punished the in­fidelitie of the people, by depriuing them of the possession of the land. I answere, that the consequence is good: to wit, that the same which was taken away from them, is offe­red vnto vs: seeing the holy Ghost admonisheth vs to take heede that by our owne fault we be not punished as they were. Therefore the Apostle rightly saith, that the promise [Page 74]is renued to the children, because the infidelitie of the fa­thers left the possession emptie and void: and all to this end that the children might obtaine that which the fathers de­spised.

For if Ioshuah had giuen them rest, Ver. 8 &c] He denies not but Dauid tooke this rest for the land of Canaan, into which Ioshuah brought the people: but hee denies that it was the last rest vnto which the faithfull did aspire: it being as well common to the people of that time as to vs now. Certainly they had a higher respect than vnto that land: for whereas the land of Canaan was so highly esteemed, VVhy the Iewes desired so much to enter into the land of Canaan. the faithfull did it for no other cause, but in regard it was vnto them an image and pledge of the spirituall inheritance. So then, af­ter they had obtained the possession of it, they were not to rest in the view thereof, as though they had been come to the fulnes of their desires, but were rather to meditate of the spirituall meaning thereof. Those of whom Dauid spake in the Psalme, enioyed the possession: but yet in the meane while they were admonished to seeke a better rest elswhere. Wee see that the land of Canaan was a rest but onely in sha­dow and figure, in such wise as it was needfull for the faith­full to looke further.

In this sense the Apostle saith that rest was not giuen them by Ioshua: because the people entred into the land vn­der his conduct, to the end they might with the more cheer­full and readie affection aspire vnto heauen. And by this it is easie to gather what difference there is betweene them and vs. For although they and we haue one end set before vs vnto which we ought to aime: yet they had more exter­nall figures, by which they were holpen: which figures we haue not, VVe haue no such neede of shadowes and sigures now, as the Iewes had. neither is it needfull wee should; seeing the sub­stance is plainly and euidently set before our eyes. For how­soeuer our saluation consists yet in hope, yet the doctrine whereupon it is grounded brings vs directly to heauen. Nei­ther doth Christ reach vs his hand to leade vs about by ma­ny circuits and shadowes, but with the same doth lift vs vp thither by turning our senses from this world. Now in that [Page 75]the Apostle separates the shadow from the truth and sub­stance, it is because hee had to deale with the Iewes, who re­sted too much vpon externall things. Lastly, Verse 9 he concludes that there remaines a rest to the people of God: that is to say, a spirituall rest, whereunto God doth daily call vs.

For he which is entred into his rest.] Verse 10 This is the definition of this perpetuall Sabbath, in which the chiefe felicitie and blessednes of men consists, wherein there is some similitude betweene God and them, by which they are ioyned vnto him. For whatsoeuer the Philosophers haue disputed tou­ching the soueraigne good, VVe must goe out of our selues to attaine true felicitie. The soueraigne good of man. all was but lies and meere fol­lies: because they held man still in himselfe, whereas wee must goe out of our selues to attaine true felicitie. The so­ueraigne good of man then is nothing els but to be knit vn­to God. Then we shall come vnto it, when wee are confor­med according to the rule and paterne which he sets before vs in his person. Now the Apostle shewes that this confor­mitie consists in this, that wee rest from our owne workes: whereupon it followes, that a man is made blessed when he renounceth himselfe. What is it then to rest from our owne workes, but the mortification of the flesh: that is to wit, when a man renounceth himselfe to liue to God? For when we speake of the rule of liuing well and holily, we must al­waies begin at this, that man being dead in himselfe, do suf­fer God to liue in him: that he cease from his owne workes, to giue God place to worke in him. For it must needes bee confessed that the life is then well ordered, when it is sub­iect to God. Now such is the corruption of our nature, that this will neuer be brought to passe, vntill we cease from our owne workes. There is (I say) such a repugnancie betweene the gouernment of God and our affections, that hee cannot worke in vs, vnlesse wee rest. But for as much as the accom­plishment of this rest is neuer in this life, wee must daily striue to come vnto it. The faithfull then doe enter into it, but it is vpon condition that they profit daily in pressing to the marke.

Moreouer, I doubt not but the Apostle of set purpose al­ludes [Page 76]to the Sabbath day, to the ende he might withdrawe the Iewes from the externall obseruation of it. For the abo­lishing thereof cannot be vnderstood, vnlesse we know the spirituall ende for which it was instituted. And therefore the Apostle vnder this one, aimes at two things. For in praising the excellencie of Gods grace, 1 he drawes vs to receiue it by faith: 2 and yet in the meane while, he shewes by the way the true manner of obseruing the Sabbath: to the ende the Iewes should no longer abuse themselues by staying in the outward ceremonie. True it is, he speakes not directly of the abolishing thereof, because it was not his purpose; but in shewing that this ceremonie had another end; he thus draws them by litle and litle from that superstitious opini­on which they had of it. For whosoeuer vnderstands that the commandement had an other ende besides the externall rest, or an earthly obseruation; such a one looking vnto Christ, knowes by and by that the vse of the ceremony is abolished by his comming. For as soone as the bodie ap­peares, the shadows vanish away. Wherefore a man ought alwaies in the first place, carefully to shew that Christ is the end of the law.

11 Let vs studie therfore to enter into that rest, least any man fall after the same ensample of disobedience.

12 For the word of God is liuely, and mightie in operation, and sharper than any two edged sword, and entreth through, euen vnto the diuiding asunder of the soule and the spirit, and of the ioynts, and the marrow, and is a discerner of the thoughts, & the intents of the heart.

13 Neither is there any creature, which is not manifest in his sight: but all things are naked and open vnto his eies, with whom we haue to doe.

HAuing shewed vs the marke whereat we ought to aime, Verse 11 he now admonisheth vs to put our selues into the way; which we shall doe, when we accustome our selues to renounce our own nature. Now because he compares the [Page 77]entrance into this rest, to a strait course: he sets falling, as op­posite thereunto: and so he continues the similitude in both the members. Although he by and by makes an allusion to the historie, which Moses recites of those that fell in the de­sert, because they had rebelled against God, Numb. 26.65. And therefore he saith, after the same manner of disobedience: signifying that the punishment of infidelitie and rebellion is represented before vs, as it were in a painted table: also that we should not doubt but the like will befall vs, if we be found guiltie of the same infidelitie. To fall, then is taken to perish: or to speake more cleerely, it is taken for the punish­ment, and not for the sinne. But this metaphor is to be refer­red both to the former word of entring, as also to the pitiful fall of the Fathers, 1. Cor. 10.8. by whose example he meant to terrifie the Iewes.

For the word of God is liuely:] Ver. 12 Whatsoeuer he intreateth of in this place touching the efficacie of the word, tends to shew that they shall not goe vnpunished if they despise it: as if he should say, when the Lord sends vs his word, he speakes vnto vs in good earnest, to the end he may mooue all our inward senses: and therefore what power is there in the soule, which ought not to be touched to the quicke? Now before we passe any further, we must see whether the Apostle speakes of the word in generall, or whether he ap­plies this to the faithfull in particular. For it is certaine (and we may see it cleerely) that the word is not effectuall indif­ferently and equally in all. For the vertue thereof manifests it selfe in the elect, that being humbled in the true acknow­ledgment of themselues, they should haue their recourse to the grace of Christ: which cannot be done vnlesse it pierce into the very depth of the heart. For hypocrisie, which hath many darke corners, and wonderfull conueiances in the heart of man, must be cast out: neither is it enough that we feele some light prickings; but we must be pierced and ga­ged to the bottome, that so beeing ouerwhelmed with the feeling of eternall death, we may learne to die to our selues. In a word, wee shall neuer be wholy renued in the spirit of [Page 78]our mind (which S. Paul notwithstanding commands, Eph. 4.23.) till our old man be slaine by the stroke of this spiri­tuall sword. And therefore in another place the same Apo­stle saith, that the faithfull are sacrificed to God by the Go­spel, Phil. 2.17. why? because they could not be brought vn­der the obedience of God, vnlesse their owne will were brought to nothing: neither could they otherwise receiue the light of Gods diuine wisdome, vnlesse the light of the flesh by wisdome were put out. As for the reprobates, no such thing can be perceiued in them, for either they proud­ly contemne God speaking vnto them, yea they spare not to deride him; or else they murmure against his doctrine, & obstinately kicke and spurne against it. The hearts of the reprobates compared to the Anuill. So that euen as the word of God is an hammer, so haue they also an heart as the anuill, driuing the blowes backe againe, be they neuer so mightie. And therefore it is vnpossible the word of God should pierce so farre in them, as to come to the diuision of the soule and of the spirit. For this cause it seemes that this ti­tle ought only to be restrained to the faithfull; seeing none but they doe examine themselues thus to the quicke. Not­withstanding the coherēce of the text of the Apostle shews, that it is a generall sentence, which extends it selfe euen to the reprobates. For although they be not softened by it, but doe set hearts of iron and steele against God and his word, yet must they necessarily be shut vp vnder their owne con­demnation. It is true they laugh; but it is the laughter of an hostler, as they say; for they feele themselues wrung as it were within: many shiftings and turnings they make that they might not come neere the iudgement seat of God: but thither are they drawne will they nill they, euen by this word, against which they so proudly exalt themselues. So then we may compare them to madde dogges, who al­though they bite and scratch the chaine, yet they gaine no­thing, because they still remaine fast tied therewith. Now howsoeuer this effect of the word doth not shewe it selfe at the first day, yet by the euent at the last you shall know, that the word is not preached to any man in vaine. Verily it is a [Page 79]generall sentence which Christ pronounceth when he saith, The Spirit shall come and reproue the world of sin, Ioh. 16.8. But how doth the Spirit exercise this reproofe? Verily by the Gospell preached. Lastly, although the word of God hath not alwaies this power in men, yet it hath this power inclosed in it selfe.

Now the Apostle disputes here of the nature and proper office of it, onely to the end we might know that as soone as it hath sounded in our eares, our consciences are foorthwith arraigned before Gods iudgement seate, and found guiltie. As if hee should say, If any man bee of that minde that hee thinkes it is but a beating of the aire in vaine when the word of God is preached, he greatly erreth and deceiues himselfe. For the word is liuely, and full of secret efficacie, which leaues no part of a man vntouched. This is the summe then of these words, to wit, that as soon as the Lord hath opened his sacred mouth, all our senses ought forthwith to be open and to receiue his word. Why? because he will not speake in vaine, as if his words should either vanish, or fall to the ground, or as if no account were to bee made of them: but he speakes with efficacie to the consciences of men, that he might subiect them vnto himselfe. The cause therefore why he giues such vertue to his word is, that it might search all the parts of the soule; examine the thoughts, and discerne betweene the affections: in a word, that it might shew it selfe to be our Iudge.

But here a new question may arise, to wit, Question. whether this is to be vnderstood of the Law or of the Gospell. They which thinke the Apostle speakes of the Law, bring these testimo­nies of S. Paul, that it is the ministerie of death, 2. Cor. 3.6.7. that it is a killing letter, that it brings nothing but wrath, and such like. But the Apostle in this place also notes diuers other effects. For as wee haue said, there is a liuely killing of the soule, which is done by the Gospell. Answere. Let vs know then that the Apostle speakes of the whole doctrine of God, when he saith it is liuely, and mightie in operation. To the same purpose S. Paul protests that his preaching was the [Page 80]sweete sauour of life vnto life to the faithfull, 2. Cor. 2.16. and of death vnto death in the vnfaithfull: so as God neuer speakes in vaine, but either he thereby brings his owne to saluation; or els thereby casts the wicked headlong into perdition. And this is the power of binding and losing which the Lord committed to his Apostles, Matth. 18.18. This is the spiri­tuall power whereof Paul glorieth in the 2. Cor. 10 4. And indeede it doth neuer promise vs saluation in Christ; but on the contrarie it openly denounceth vengeance to the vn­faithfull, who in reiecting of Christ, doe plunge themselues ouer head and eares in death.

Moreouer, wee must note that the Apostle speakes of the word of God as it is brought vs by the ministerie of men. For these are but railings and pernicious discourses of them who say, it is true that the inspired word hath indeed his ef­ficacie, but the word which proceedes from the mouthes of men, is dead and without effect. I confesse the efficacie pro­ceedes not from the tongues of men, neither consists it in the bare sound, but the efficacie is wholy to be giuen to the Spirit of God: and yet notwithstanding al this lets not that the holy Ghost should not manifest his power by the word preached. For in regard that God speakes not personally himselfe, but by men; the Apostle doth so much the more insist vpon this, that the word should not be receiued hand ouer head, or in contempt because men are the ministers of it. Accordingly, when S. Paul calles the Gospell the power of God, Rom. 1.16. he doth expressely adorne it with this title of preaching; the which hee saw to bee a matter of re­proch vnto some, and of contempt vnto others. And where he teacheth in another place, that saluation is made ours by the doctrine of faith, hee expressely giues it the title of that which is preached, Rom. 10.8. Wee see how God alwaies doth precisely commend the doctrine which is administred vnto vs by men, to the end hee might hold vs in the reue­rence and obedience of it. Preaching must not be contemned. Now in that the word is called liuely, it must be supplied as hauing relation vnto vs: which is the better vnderstood by the second epithite: for in say­ing [Page 81]this word is mightie, he shewes wherein the life of it con­sists. For the Apostles meaning is to shew what the vse of the word is in regard of vs. Now as touching the similitude of a sword, the Scripture vseth it also in other places: but the Apostle not content with the simple comparison, saith, that the word of God is sharper than any sword, yea than any two edged sword: because in that time they commonlie wore swords which had but one edge.

And diuideth betweene the soule and the spirit.] This word soule is often taken for the spirit: but when the soule and spirit are ioyned together, then the soule compre­hends vnder it all the affections: and the spirit compre­hends the power or facultie of the vnderstanding. And thus S. Paul desiring of God that he would conserue the soules, 1. Thess. 5.23. the spirits and bodies of the Thessalonians pure and blame­lesse vnto the comming of Christ, desires nothing els, but that they may continue pure and chast in minde, in will, and in all their externall actions. Likewise when Isaiah saith, With my soule haue I desired thee in the night, and with my spirit haue I sought thee in the morning: his meaning is that hee was so attent in seeking God, that hee applied his whole minde and heart thereunto, Isai. 26.9. I know others doe expound it otherwise; but I hope all that are of sound iudgement will easily agree with me. Let vs now returne to the present text. The word of God reacheth euen to the di­uiding betweene the soule and the spirit: that is to say, it exa­mines the whole life of man. For it pearceth euen to the thoughts of the minde, and soundeth the will, with all the desires of the same. To the same end tends that which is ad­ded of the ioynts, and marrow: for his meaning is, that there is nothing so hard or massie in man, nor nothing so secret and hidden, but the efficacie of this word will reach into it.

And that is it which S. Paul meanes when he saith, that prophecie serueth to reprooue and iudge men, euen to the reuealing of the secrets of their hearts, 1. Cor. 14.24. Truly howsoeuer it be the office of Christ to discouer & bring to light the secret thoughts of the heart, yet for the most part [Page 82]he doth this by his Gospell. The word then performeth the office of a Iudge: because it plucks the spirit of man as out of a labyrinth in which before it lay inwrapped, and kept it selfe close, and brings it foorth into the Sunne light, to the end knowledge and iudgement may passe vpon it. For no darknes is so thicke as infidelitie is: No darknes like insidelitie; nor any blind­nes to hypocri­sie: but the word preached discouers both. and hypocrisie blin­deth after an horrible fashion. The word of God scattereth this darknes, & casteth off this hypocrisie quite and cleane. From thence proceedes that discerning and iudgement whereof the Apostle speaketh; for the vices which before were hidden vnder a vaine pretence and appearance of ver­tue, are now perceiued and knowne, the deceit being taken away. Now although the reprobates remaine for a time hidden in their lurking holes, yet notwithstanding in the end they feele that the light of the word shineth euen thi­ther, so as they cannot escape the iudgement of God. And from thence ariseth their murmurings and rage. For if they were not smitten with the word, they would not manifest their furie as they doe: they would rather scorne it, or wind themselues out of the power of it: they would also be con­tent to dissemble the matter: but God will not suffer them to scape so. Therefore as soone as they doe begin to mur­mure at the word, or to be inflamed against it, they thereby confesse that they feele the force of it within them in de­spite of their teeth, kick they neuer so much against it.

Neither is there any creature hid from him, Vers. 13 &c.] This word And, is as much to say in this place (in my iudgement) as if he had said, For. And so to confirme this sentence, That no­thing is hidden in man, which shall not bee iudged by the word of God; he takes an argument from the nature of God. No creature, saith he, can be hidden before God: no­thing then is so deep in the soule, which shal not be drawne into the light by his word, which resembles him that is the author of it. For as it is the office of God to search the harts, so doth he also exercise this knowledge and iudgement by his word. The expositors not taking heede to this: to wit, that the word of God is as a plummet, by the which hee [Page 83]diues into the bottome of mens hearts, and searcheth and feeleth whatsoeuer is hidden therein, haue offered violence to this whole text, and yet were not able to winde them­selues out. But all the difficultie is taken away if you make the argument stand thus, That we are therefore to obey the word of God purely and with a true affection of heart, be­cause God who knowes the hearts, hath assigned this office to his word to pierce euen into the very deepest thoughts of the same. They haue also deceiued themselues in the tran­slation of the Greeke word, which is somewhat ambiguous. For they haue trāslated, Of whom we speak; where it ought rather to be turned, with whom we haue to doe. The meaning whereof is, that it is God who offereth himselfe vnto vs, or with whom we haue to doe, and therefore wee are to take heede we dallie not with him as with a mortall man: but to tremble as often as his word is propounded vnto vs, be­cause nothing is so secret which is not naked and manifest before his eyes.

14 Seeing then that wee haue a great high Priest, Verse 14 which is entred into heauen, euen Iesus the Sonne of God, let vs hold fast our " or, confession. profession.

15 For wee haue not an high Priest, which cannot or, which can­not haue com­passion of our infirmities. be tou­ched with the feeling of our infirmities, but was in all things tempted in like sort yet without sinne.

16 Let vs therefore go boldly vnto the throne of grace, that we may receiue mercie, and finde grace to helpe in time of need.

SEing then that we haue a great high Priest.] Verse 14 Hitherunto he hath spoken of the Apostleship of Christ: now he comes to entreate of his second office. For wee haue said, when Christ was sent: he receiued two offices, that is, of Doctor, and Priest. The second part of this Epistle. The Apostle then hauing exhorted the Iewes to receiue the doctrine of Christ with all obedience, doth now shew vnto them what profit his Priesthood bringeth. And this is the second member of his disputation in this Epistle. Now hee doth very fitly ioyne the Priesthood with the A­postleship, [Page 84]in that he saith, the end of them both is to bring vs to God. He saith, Then; because he had touched this arti­cle also before, Chap. 2.17. & chap. 3.1. to wit, that Christ is our high Priest: but be­cause the efficacie of the Priesthood is communicated vnto vs by doctrine onely, it was needfull to prepare mens minds thereby to receiue Christ. Those that pro­fesse them­selues schollers in the schoole of Christ, must learne what profit redounds vnto them by his priesthood: as also the vse and end of it. Now it remaines that those who acknowledge him for their Schoolemaster, and yeild them­selues teachable disciples vnder him, doe also learne from his mouth, or in his schoole, what profit his Priesthood bringeth, and what the vse and ende of it is. He saith in the first place, seeing we haue such an high Priest, euen Iesus the Sonne of God, Let vs hold fast our profession. Confession is here taken for faith, as before chap. 3. Nowe because the Priesthood serued to confirme the doctrine, the Apostle ga­thers from hence that we haue none occasion to doubt or wauer in the faith of the Gospel, seeing the Sonne of God hath ratified and confirmed it. For whosoeuer holds not this doctrine for sure and stedfast, he dishonors the Sonne of God, and dispoyles him of the dignitie of his Priesthood. Such an excellent pledge I say, ought to giue vs so much the more assurance; that without feare, we may rest our selues vpon the Gospel.

For we haue not an high Priest, &c.] Ver. 15 There is such a maie­stie in this name of the Sonne of God, which he touched in the former verse, that it constraines vs to feare, and obedi­ence: but if we behold nothing els in Christ, our conscien­ces would neuer be in quiet. For who is he that would not feare the face of the Sonne of God; especially if we consider what we are when our sinnes doe present themselues be­fore vs? Moreouer the Iewes might haue had another hin­drance; because they were accustomed to the Leuiticall Priesthood. There they saw a mortall man, chosen from a­mong his brethren, which entred into the sancturie, that by his praier he might reconcile them vnto god. For it is a great matter when the Mediator which can appease god towards vs, is taken from among vs. This allurement might retaine the mindes of the Iewes in suspence; and hold them alwaies [Page 85]tyed to the Leuiticall Priesthood, vnlesse the Apostle had remedied the matter, by shewing that the Sonne of God is not onely excellent in glorie, but also vseth a sweet and ami­able goodnesse towards vs. He staies himselfe then in this article, whē he saith that he felt our infirmities, that he might haue compassion on vs.

As touching this word compassion, I will not stand dispu­ting too subtilly about it. For the question which some make is no lesse friuolous than curious, to wit, whether Christ is now mooued with our miseries or not? Truly the Apostle had no intent to busie our heads with such idle speculations: but onely shewes that we neede not seeke farre for a Mediator, because Christ reacheth forth his hand vnto vs before we enquire after him. Secondly, that we need not be terrified in regard of his Maiestie, for he is our bro­ther. Thirdly, that we haue no occasion to feare that he should not be touched with any compassion to doe vs good as if himselfe had neuer tasted of miseries; for he hath borne our infirmities, to the ende he might be the better inclined to succour vs.

The whole speech then of the Apostle ought to be re­ferred to the sense of faith, because he doth not so much di­spute what Christ is in himselfe, but rather what he is in re­gard of vs. By this word of likenesse, he meanes the agreemēt of the nature; thereby signifying that Christ by putting on our nature, hath also taken our affections, not onely to the end he might declare himselfe to be true man, but also that he might learne by experience to giue succour to the affli­cted. Not that the sonne of God had neede of such rudi­ments or instructions, but because we could not otherwise comprehend in our mindes the care which he hath of our saluation. As often then as we are burthened and faint vn­der the infirmities of our flesh, let vs remember that the Son of God hath both felt, and had experience of the like; to the end he might sustaine vs by his power, that we should not be ouerwhelmed vnder them. But here it may be asked, what he means by infirmities: for this word is taken in di­uers [Page 86]significations. Some thinke he meanes heate, cold, hun­ger, thirst, and such other bodily infirmities: as also con­tempt, pouertie, and the like, as we may see in many places of Paul, but specially in the 2. Cor. 12.10. But their opinion is the best, who with pouerties and outward miseries doe also comprehend afflictions of minde, as feare, sorrowe, ter­rours of death, and such like.

And indeed this restraint, without sinne, should otherwise be in vaine. For by reason of the peruersitie of our nature, our affections are alwaies vitious, but they were exempt from all vice in Christ, because in him there was a soueraign vprightnesse, and a puritie most perfect. It is certaine that sicknesses, and pouerties, together with the things which are without vs, are not imputed as sinnes. Wherefore when he speaketh of the infirmities which are neere vnto sinne, wee need not doubt but he meant the affections of the Spirit, to which mans nature is subiect because of his infirmitie: for herein the condition of Angels is better than ours, that they are not subiect to feare, or sorrow; as also that they are not combred with cares, or with the feare of death. Christ hath willingly taken vpon him these infirmities, and it was also his pleasure to fight against them, not onely to conquer them for vs; but that we should also be assuredly perswaded that he is neere vnto vs, as often as we feele any by experi­ence of them. For this cause he was not onely made man es­sentially, but also tooke vpon himselfe the qualities of mans nature. There is alwaies a restraint added, without sinne: be­cause we are euermore to obserue this difference betweene the affections of Christ, and ours: That Christs were alwaies well ordered according to the true rule of iustice: but ours, which proceede from a troubled fountaine, doe alwaies sa­uour of their originall nature, because they are out of frame and disordered.

Let vs therefore goe boldly, &c.] Verse 16 He concludes that al they haue accesse vnto God, which come to him in the name of the Mediator, and doe rest vpon him: yea he exhorts them that they should not feare to present themselues before the [Page 87]face of God. And this is the principall fruit of the spirituall doctrine, euen to haue full confidence to call vpon God: as one the contrarie, all religion falls to the ground, All religion falls to the ground: where assurance of saluation is taken from mens conscien­ces. where this assurance is taken away from mens consciences. From whence we may easily gather that the light of the Gospel was quenched in the Papacie, where the poore miserable people are commanded to doubt whether God will be gra­tious and fauorable, or whether he wil be angrie with them. They command men indeed to seeke God; but they shewe them not the way by which they may come vnto him: nay rather they euen shutte vp the gate, which onely giues them entrance. I grant they confesse that Christ is a Mediatour in the Generall; but when it comes to the point, they abolish the vertue of his Priesthood, and dispoyle him of his honor. For this is a sure point, that where Christ is knowne indeede to be the true Mediatour, there forthwith doth all doubt­ings vanish, that may any way cause vs to suspect whether we may haue accesse vnto God or no. Otherwise the Apo­stles consequence in this place, We haue such an high Priest which is readie to helpe vs, were to no purpose.

We ought therefore to goe boldly to the throne of grace, with assurance and confidence. For if we were throughly per­swaded that Christ doth willingly reach vs his hand, who is it that would not conceiue full boldnesse to present him­selfe before this throne? That which I haue said then is true, to wit, that men doe take the vertue of Christ his Priesthood away from him, as long as they stand in doubt, and vexe themselues in seeking Mediators here and there, as if Christ alone were not sufficient: vpon whose intercession whosoe­uer rests himselfe indeed, as the Apostle here commandeth, he may assure himselfe that his praiers are heard. The foun­dation of this assurance is, that the throne of God doth not present such a maiestie as should astonish vs; but it is ador­ned with a new title, that is to say, of grace: which alwaies ought to be fresh in our memories, when we flie the pre­sence of God. For it cannot be but the glorie of God should swallowe vs vp by and by with despaire, if that alone [Page 88]come into our mindes: and so, his throne shall be fearefull vnto vs indeede. The Apostle therefore to remedie this di­strust, and to deliuer our mindes from feare and trembling, doth cloath it with grace, and giues a name vnto it that might draw vs by the sweetnes thereof. As if he should say, since God doth hang out of his throne an ensigne of grace, & of his fatherly loue towards vs, we haue no cause to feare that his maiestie should beat vs backe, or hinder vs to goe vnto him. The summe is, that we call vpon God boldly with full confidence, since we knowe that he is become fauoura­ble to vs; and that we doe this by the meanes of Christ: as it is said, Eph. 3.12. By him we haue boldnesse and confidence by faith in him. VVe ought not to feare the throne of God, for it is hang­ed all ouer with grace. For when Christ receiueth vs vnder his gard and protection, he couereth the admirable maiestie of God with fauour (which without him would be fearefull) to the end that nothing might appeare there but grace and father­ly kindnes.

That we may receiue mercie.] This is not added without great cause, but expressely to confirme and imbolden those that haue neede of mercie: Least any beeing thrown down too farre with the feeling of their miserie; the way should be shut by distrust against them. This manner of speech to finde grace, containes in it in the first place a most sweet do­ctrine: to wit, that all those who resting themselues vpon the intercession of Christ, shall call vpon God, shall be well as­sured to obtaine mercie. In the meane while, the Apostle doth priuily threaten all them which hold not this way, and signifies that God will not heare them, because they haue despised the onely meanes whereby to appease him. He ad­deth, to helpe in time of neede, that is to say, to obtaine what­soeuer is needfull for our saluation. Now this time of need, hath respect to the time of Gods calling vs, according as S. Paul applies the place of Isaiah, 49.8. to the publishing of the Gospel, Behold now the acceptable time. 2. Cor. 6.2. for the Apostle hath respect to that day wherein god speaks to vs. So that if to day we heare God speake vnto vs, and we put off till to morrow; the night will come, with the darke­nes [Page 89]thereof, in which we shall not be able to doe that which now wee may: neither will it boote vs any thing at all to knock at the gate when it shall be shut.

CHAP. V.

1 For euery high Priest is taken from among men, and is or­dained for men, in things pertaining to God, that he may offer both gifts and sacrifices for sinnes,

2 Which is able sufficiently to haue compassion on them that are ignorant, and that are out of the way, because that he also is compassed with infirmitie.

3 And for the sames sake he is bound to offer for sinnes, as well for his owne part as for the people.

4 And no man taketh this honour vnto himselfe, but he that is called of God, as was Aaron.

5 So likewise Christ tooke not to himselfe this honour to bee made the high Priest, but he that said vnto him, Thou art my Sonne, this day begat I thee, gaue it him: Psal. 2.7. Psal. 110.4.

6 As he also in another place speaketh, Thou art a Priest for euer, after the order of Melchisedec.

NOw euery high Priest, &c.] Verse. 1 He compares Christ with the Leuiticall Priests: and shewes what hee hath in common with them, and wherein they differ. Now the whole disputation tends to haue Christ his office well vnderstood; as also to shew that whatsoeuer was or­dained vnder the Law, had respect vnto him. And from hence the Apostle makes way at the last to shew how the old Priesthood is abolished. First he saith, 1 the Priests are ta­ken from among men. Secondly, 2 that they offer not for themselues in particular only, but for all the people. 3 Third­ly, that they must not come empty handed to appease God, but furnished with sacrifices. Fourthly, 4 that they were not to be exempt from our infirmities, to the end they might the more freely and willingly helpe those which were bur­thened. [...] [Page 92]all men are of one nature and flesh. But now hee toucheth another thing, to wit, that the Priest ought to support sin­ners with compassion, because he is partaker of their infir­mities. The Greeke word which the Apostle here vseth, hath been diuersly expounded as well by Latins as Greekes. For mine owne part I thinke it is simply taken to applie himself to compassion. True it is that all which is said of the Leuiti­call Priests, agrees not vnto Christ. For we know that Christ was exempt from all contagion of sinne: wherefore he dif­fers from others in this regard that he had no neede to offer sacrifices for himselfe: but it sufficeth that he also bare our infirmities, being notwithstanding pure and voide of sinne. Thus as touching the Priests vnder the law then, the Apostle saith that they were subiect to humane infirmities: and therefore were faine to make reconciliation for their owne sinnes by sacrifices, that they might not only meekly beare with the faults of others, but also might haue compassion vpon them. Now this part ought so to be applied to Christ, that in the meane while wee must carefully adde thereunto that exception whereof mention was made erewhile: to wit, that hee bare and tasted of our infirmities; but without sinne. For although he were alwaies free from sinne, yet not­withstanding the onely feeling of those infirmities, whereof he hath spoken, were of sufficient force in him, to encline his heart to succour vs, and to make him gentle and readie to pardon vs; as also carefull of our miseries. The summe is, that Christ is not onely our brother in regard of the vnion of our flesh and nature, but also by partaking with vs of our infirmities he is allured, nay fashioned and framed to beare with vs, and to bee very lowly and gratious vnto vs. The Greeke word which wee translate, who can, imports more than if wee should say in our common speech, is able, or, is mightie: for it is taken for one that is fit, or capable. These words, the ignorant, and those that are out of the way, are ta­ken for sinners after the manner of the Hebrues. And of this we are to speake more hereafter.

And no man taketh this honour vnto him, &c.] Vers. 4 In this mem­ber [Page 93]we haue to note, first the similitude, and then the diuersi­tie of it. The calling of God makes the office lawfull, for none can exercise the same in good sort as he ought, if he be not created of God. This is common to Christ and to Aa­ron, that both were called of God: but in this they differ, that in as much as Christ succeeded Aaron for a newe and diuers respect, and was ordained to be a perpetuall high Priest, it appeares that the Priesthood of Aaron was but temporarie, and to be abolished. Now we see the Apostles drift. The right of the office of Priesthood was to be reser­ued to Christ: he doth it in shewing that God is the author of it. But this is not yet sufficient, vnlesse it appeares that the auncient Priesthood ceased, to giue place to this. He proues it, because we must haue an eie to the Condition whereunto Aaron was ordained a Priest (for it lieth not in vs to stretch it further then Gods ordinance will beare) and he will by and by shew how long Gods wil was, this first order should last. Christ then is a lawfull Priest, because he was ordained by Gods authoritie. What shall we say of Aaron, and of those that succeeded him? Truely they had power and au­thoritie so farre forth as it was giuen them of God, and not as the same was attributed vnto them by the opinion of men.

Now although this be spoken in regard of the circum­stance of speech which is here handled; yet from hence may be gathered a generall doctrine: to wit, that no gouernment is to be brought into the Church at the lust and pleasure of men, 1 but ought rather to tarrie and waite for the comman­dement of God: also, that a certaine and set rule is to be v­sed in election and choice of ministers, 2 that so none intrude himselfe after his own fantasie. Church go­uernment must not besquared according to mens appetites, but by the com­mandement of God. We must distinctly note both these points. For the Apostle speakes not here onely of persons, but also of the office. He denies, I say, that office which men forge without commandement, and the ex­presse ordinance of God, to be holy or lawfull. For as it one­ly belongs to God to gouerne the Church, so doth he also wholy reserue vnto himselfe both the power of limiting [Page 94]the way, and the rule of the administration thereof. From whence I conclude, that the Priesthood of the Popedome is a bastard Priesthood, because it hath beene forged in the shoppe of mans inuention. What one text of scripture is there wherein God commands that wee should now offer sacrifice vnto him for the purgation of sinnes? neither hath he ordained that Priests should be created to this ende. Al­though the Pope then ordaine his shauelings for to offer sacrifice, Christ would not runne be­fore he was sent, but waited for a calling from his father the Apostle saith that we are not to hold them for lawfull: vnlesse peraduenture they haue some newe priue­ledge to exalt themselues aboue Christ: who yet durst not take this honour to himselfe of his own motion, but waited for a calling from his Father.

This also ought to haue place in regard of persons; to the ende no priuate man should take this honour to himselfe, vnlesse publike authoritie goe alwaies before. I speake of the offices which otherwise are ordained of God. It may so fall out sometimes I denie not, but he which shall not be called of God (howsoeuer for that cause he is the lesse to be approoued of) ought notwithstanding to be suffered, if so be his office be holy & approoued of God. Those that haue a lawfull outward cal­ling, are not rashly to be re­iected, though they want the For often times many thrust in themselues, and enter into this function by ambition, or other vnlawfull and wicked meanes, who are no way assured of their calling: and yet notwithstanding they must not be reiected by and by; but especially then, when it cannot be done by the publike censure of the Church. Two hundred yeares before the comming of Iesus Christ, there were filthy corruptions, & great abuses which raigned in the manner of gouerning, or rather in the vsur­pation of the high Priest: and yet notwithstanding as tou­ching the office it selfe, the power and authoritie of the state remained still, by reason the calling was of God. The per­sons were indured, because the libertie of the Church was oppressed. Whereby it appeares that the great and chiefest fault is in the kind of the office: that is to wit, when men take vpon them of themselues to inuent a calling in the Church, which God hath no way commanded. So much the lesse [Page 95]then are those Priests which the Pope hath made, to be en­dured; who to prooue themselues such as ought to be held for sacred and holy, doe with full mouth incessantly alleage their great titles: and yet notwithstanding they haue chosen them themselues, without asking either counsell or leaue of God.

Thou art my sonne, this day haue I begotten thee.] It may seeme that this sentence is farre fetched. For although it be graunted that Christ was begotten of God the Father, doth that conclude therefore that he was ordained a Priest by him also? But if we consider to what ende Christ was re­uealed to the world, we shall easily perceiue that this quali­tie doth necessarily appertaine vnto him. But withall, we must also call that againe to minde which we haue said in the first chapter: to wit, that this generation of Christ, wher­of the Psalme speaketh, is a testimonie that the Father hath giuen him to men. Wherefore this word is not put here to signifie a mutuall relation between the Father and the Son, but is rather to be referred vnto men, to whom he was ma­nifested after an high and excellent manner. But what is it that God hath manifested vnto vs in his Sonne? is it with­out honour, or without any power at all? nay, hath he not rather manifested him to be such a one as is fitte to be the Mediator betweene God and men? And therefore this ge­neration or begetting, containeth also the Priesthood.

As also in another place he saith, &c.] Vers. 6 Now the Apostle doth more cleerely expresse his meaning. It is an excellent place and worthy of our obseruation, and so is the whole Psalme it selfe out of which it is takē. For there is scarcely to be found a more manifest prophesie, either of the eternall Priesthood, or kingdome of Christ, than this; And yet not­withstanding the Iewes labour with might and maine to picke quarrels on euery side to darken the glorie of Christ: but they gaine nothing by it. For whereas they drawe that which is there spoken to Dauid, as if it were he that should be at the right hand of God: It is too blockish an impuden­cie. We know it was vtterly vnlawfull for Kings to meddle [Page 96]with the Priesthood. And therefore Vzziah for this onely crime, to wit, for vsurping this office which no way belong­ed vnto him, did so prouoke the wrath of God, that he was stroken with leprosie, 2. Chro. 26.18. It is certaine therefore, that this is not meant of the person of Dauid, nor of any of the kings which succeeded him. If they reply that Princes are sometimes called by the name Cohenim, which is here vsed: I confesse it, but withall I denie that this agrees with this present place: for the comparison leaues no ambigui­tie: Melchizedec was the Priest of God. The Psalme wit­nesseth that this King, which he hath placed at his right hād, shall be Cohem, after the order of Melchizedec. Who sees not that this is to be vnderstood of the Priesthood? for it be­ing a very rare example, & scarcely to be found, that a man should be Priest and King together; at the least a thing new and vnheard of among the people of God: therefore he proposeth Melchisedec for an exāple of the Messias. As if he should say, The Royall dignitie shall not hinder him frō ex­ercising the office of the Priest also: why? because the figure was foreshewed in Melchisedec. And truely those amongst the Iewes which are not altogether impudent, doe agree that this is here spoken of the Messias: moreouer they doubt not, but these wordes doe tende to the praise and magnifying of the Priesthood.

Whereas the Greekes haue translated after the order; in the Hebrew it is word for word As, or, according to the forme, or after the fashion of. Which confirmes my former speech, to wit, because it was a thing vsuall among the peo­ple, that a man should be king and Priest both together, he therefore sets this auncient example before them, by which the Messias was figured: as for the rest, the Apostle wil han­dle it more particularly in the progresse of the text.

7 Who in the daies of his flesh did offer vppraiers and sup­plications, with strong crying and teares vnto him that was able to saue him from death, and was also heard in that which he fea­red.

[Page 97] 8 And though he were the Sonne, yet learned be obedience, by the things which he suffered.

9 And being consecrate, was made the author of eternal sal­nation vnto all them that obey him.

10 And is called of God an high Priest after the order of Melchisedec:

11 Of whom we haue many things to speake, which are hard to be vttered, because ye are dull of hearing.

WHo in the daies, &c.] Vers. 7 Because the outward forme and beautie of Christ is often diffigured by the crosse, when men consider not to what end he was humbled and abased: the Apostle here againe teacheth that which he had touched before, to wit, that there shined a marucilous goodnes of his in this, in that hee subiected himselfe to our infirmities for our benefit and profit. Whence it appeares that our faith is confirmed, and his honour no way dimini­shed by this his bearing of our miseries. Now hee assignes two causes wherefore it behoued that Christ should suffer: the neerest cause; and the last. 1 The nighest was that hee might learne obedience: the last, 2 that by this meanes hee might be consecrated the high Priest of our saluation. Now no man doubts but the daies of his flesh, should be here taken for the life present. Whence it followes, that by this word flesh, he meanes not the substance, but the qualitie: as 1. Cor. 15.50. Flesh and blood shall not inherit the kingdome of God. These fantasticall spirits then doe altogether dote, who haue dreamed that Christ is now dispoyled of his flesh, because it is here said, When he was in the flesh. For there is great difference betweene being a true man (although in the blessed estate of immortalitie) and to be subiect to the miseries and infirmities of man, which he endured whilest hee liued in this world: but now hath put them off, being entred into heauen.

Let vs come to the point of this text then. Christs prayer vvas heard, and yet he suf­fered death. Christ which was the Sonne, sought for remedie to his Father, who was heard; and yet notwithstanding endured death: that by [Page 98]this meanes he might learne obedience. There is no word here which hath not his weight. For, by the daies of his flesh, he meanes that the time of our miseries is determined and limited; which must needes bring great solace vnto vs. It were a troublesome estate, yea and vnpossible to be borne, if some hope were not set before vs that wee should come from vnder the burthen thereof in time. The three things that follow do also bring great consolation. 1 Christ was the Sonne, and therefore his dignitie did exempt him from the common condition of others: notwithstanding he hum­bled himselfe thereunto for the loue he bare vs. Afflictions doe no [...] exempt vs out of the num­ber of Gods children. What is hee now that dare refuse this state and condition? there is ano­ther reason: to wit, that if we be pressed with aduersities, yet wee are not therefore out of the number of Gods children: because wee see him that was the onely naturall Sonne of God to goe before vs. For we are the children of God, only by the benefit of adoption: yet hee who of right may attri­bute this honour to himselfe, receiueth vs into his so­cietie.

Did offer vp prayers and supplications, &c.] 2 The second is this, that Christ sought remedie at his hands who was able to saue him, that hee might be deliuered from his troubles. And this he saith to the end none should thinke that Christ had an heart of brasse without feeling. For we must alwaies consider to what end euery thing is spoken. If Christ had not bin touched with any sorrow, what consolation would haue come vnto vs by his passions? But when we heare that he felt not bodily paines alone, but also endured sharp tor­ments in his spirit, herein is the similitude shewed between him and vs. For when Christ (saith he) endured death and o­ther miseries, it was not to the end he should set them light, or not be touched with any feeling of them: for he prayed with cries, and teares, by which hee gaue testimonie of the great anguish that was in his heart. The Apostle then by these teares, and strong cries would expresse a vehement do­lour: it being an ordinarie manner of speech to note out that which was done, by the signes. Neither do I doubt but [Page 99]that he speakes of that prayer which the Euangelists recite: to wit, Father, if it bee possible, let this cup passe from me, Matth. 26.39. Also another time, My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me? For the Euangelists recite, that in this second prayer there was a great crie: In the first, wee must not imagine that his eyes were drie, whilest drops of blood trickled from his bodie, by reason of the great sorrow hee was in. For it is most certaine he was then shut vp vnder ex­treme anguishes. We need not doubt then whether he were pressed with true sorrowes or no, seeing he did thus earnest­ly pray vnto his Father for succour. But what vse hath this? Truly that as often as we are pressed vnder temptations, we learne to fasten all our senses vpon the Sonne of God, who felt the like. Seeing hee goeth before vs then, VVhat we are to doe in temp­tations of spi­rit. wee haue no cause to be out of heart. And withall wee are admonished not to sue vnto any for deliuerance out of our miseries, but to God alone. For what better rule of prayer can wee haue than the example of Christ? Now he directed his prayer to none but to his Father: O my Father (saith he) if it be pos­sible, &c. Matth. 26.39. And the Apostle sheweth vs that we are to doe the like, when he saith that Christ offered vp pray­ers to him that was able to saue him from death. For hereby he signifieth that Christ prayed rightly: because he had his re­course to him that was truly bountifull, who is God onely. His crie and teares doe also admonish vs to bee feruent and the more attent when we make our prayers. Prayer ought to be seruent. For wee ought not to goe to prayer retchlesly, but with seruencie of spi­rit.

And was heard in that which he feared. ] 3 Some haue tran­slated, For his reuerence: but I doe not at any hand approue of it. For first the Adiectiue, his, is not added in the Greeke: moreouer the word which followeth signifies, of, or some word like vnto it. Seeing then that the Greeke Noune which is put here signifieth oftentimes rather feare, or care: I doubt not but the Apostle meant to shew that Christ was heard in that which he feared: that is to say, albeit he was ouerwhel­med with sorrowes and aduersities, yet hee fell not vnder the [...] [Page 102]flesh, Our obedience cheifly appears in the denyall of our selues. to yeild to that which is pleasing vnto God, then, and neuer till then, doth our obedience appeare. This I say is a singular and euident testimonie of perfect subiection, when as we preferre death it selfe, to which we are called of God, (although it brings feare and horror) before life, which all of vs doe rather naturally desire.

And beeing consecrate was made, &c.] Vers 9 This is the last or furthest ende (as they say) wherefore it behooued Christ to suffer: to wit, that by this meanes he might be established, and consecrated into his office of Priesthood. Christ was con­secrated into his office of Priesthood, by the crosse. As if the Apo­stle should haue said, the suffering of the crosse and death, was vnto Christ the solemne manner of his consecration. By which word he signifies, that all his passions tended to our saluation. And thus it appeareth, that they were so farre off from diminishing any thing from his dignitie and ex­cellencie, that rather they were crownes of glorie vpon his head. Now if our saluation be of any pretions account with vs, oh in what honor & estimation thē ought we to haue the cause thereof. For hee deales not here onely with the do­ctrine of example, but mounts vp higher: to wit, that Christ by his obedience hath wiped out all our transgressi­ons. Thus he was made the cause or author of our saluation, because he obtained righteousnes for vs with God: & by a contrarie remedie blotted out the disobedience of Adam, with his own blood. This word sanctified, or consecrate, a­grees much better to the rest of the text, than if it were tran­slated, to perfect, or to fulfill. True it is, that the Greeke word signifies both; but because he here speakes of the Priesthood, he mentioneth this word consecrate, or sancti­fie, to very good purpose. And Christ also himselfe so speakes in Ioh. 17.19. For their sakes sanctifie I my selfe. Whence it appeares, that this consecration ought properly to be referred to his humane nature, in which he performed the office of a Priest; as also in which he suffered.

To all those that obey him:] If we be desirous then that the obedience of Christ shall profit vs at all, let vs imitate it. For the Apostles meaning is in this place, that the fruit thereof [Page 103]comes to none but to those which yeeld him obedience. If we would haue Christs obedience pro­fitable vnto vs, we must learne to follow his example there­in. And in this speech he also recommends faith vnto vs. For neither is Christ, nor any of his benefittes made ours, but fo farre foorth as wee receiue both him and them by faith. Although it seemes he hath put this word all, to shew that none are shut out from this saluation, if so bee they yeeld themselues teachable and obedient to the Gospel of Christ.

And is called of God, &c.] Vers. 10. & 11. Because it was very requisite he should more largely followe the comparison betweene Christ and Melchisedec, which he hath alreadie touched; and that it was needfull to awaken the spirits of the Iewes to the greater attention: he so entreth into the digression following, which continues till the beginning of the se­uenth chapter, that yet therewithall he holds himselfe still to the point. In the beginning of which digression he pro­tests, that he hath many things to say concerning this matter, Verse 11 but their dulnes was such as they must be prepared thereun­to; that his speech might not bee in vaine, nor his labour lost. He tels them that the matter is hard; not to discourage them, but rather to whet their attention. For euen as the ea­sines of that which wee haue to learne, doth easily beget slothfulnes, and negligence; so on the contrarie where the matter is more obscure and hard, it stirs vp in vs the greater heedfulnes to hearken. Notwithstanding he attributes the cause of the difficultie not to the thing it selfe, but to them. For it is certaine that God alwaies speaks in such cleerenes; auoyding all obscuritie, or doubtfulnes of speech, Gods word is hard, not so much in it selfe as by reason of our blindnes and carelesnes. that his word is called our light: but the brightnes of it is smothe­red by our darknes. Which partly comes to passe by the blockishnes and dulnes of our minde, and partly by our owne carelesnes. For howsoeuer we be more than very dul­lards to vnderstand the doctrine of God; yet besides, there is also the vice of vntowardnes planted in our affections. For we rather applie our mindes to vanitie, 1 than to the truth of God: and either the rebellion of our nature, 2 the cares of this world, the concupiscences of the flesh; 3 or some impe­diments or other, are as so many cordes wherewithall wee [Page 104]often feele our selues to bee hampered. As touching this word, of whom, it is not to be referred to Christ, but to Mel­chisedec: yet not as to a priuate man, but to him that was the figure of Christ, and in some sort representing his per­son.

12 For when as concerning the time ye ought to be teachers, yet haue ye neede againe that wee teach you what are the first principles of the word of God: and are become such as haue need of milke, and not of strong meate.

13 For euery one that vseth milke, is inexpert in the word of righteousnes: for he is a babe.

14 But strong meate belongeth to them that are of age, which through long custome haue their wits exercised to di­scerne both good and euill.

FOr when as concerning the time, Ver. 12 &c.] This reprehension is marucilous quicke and pearcing, and all to the end hee might rouze vp the Iewes to shake off their slothfulnes. He saith it is a very absurd thing, yea and a great shame for them, to bee yet but nouices, when as concerning the time they ought to haue been great Doctors. You should be able to teach others (saith he) but you are not yet capable your selues of the first principles. For you doe not vnderstand so much as the least poynts of the Catechisme. And to the end he might shame them yet more, he speakes of the first rudi­ments, which is as if he should haue said, The A, B, C. True it is that wee are to learne all our life long: He is a man of knowledge that knowes hovv much he vvants. because he is rightly said to be a man of knowledge, that knoweth how much he yet lacketh of perfect vnderstanding: but yet wee are so to profit in learning, that we doe not alwaies stick fast in the beginnings. And wee are to take good heed that that which Isaiah saith be not fulfilled in vs; Precept must be vp­on precept, precept vpon precept, line vnto line, line vnto line, here a little, and there a little, Isai. 28.10. But we are ra­ther to looke to our selues, that our proceedings in know­ledge be answerable to the time wherein wee first began to [Page 105]learne. VVe should not only count the yeeres but the daies since vve began to learn, that so we may looke to our proceedings in knovvledge. And questionlesse wee are not onely to reckon the yeeres, but euen also the daies one after another; that so e­uery one may stirre vp himselfe to daily profiting. But few there are that take any account of themselues concer­ning the time past, or that quicken vp themselues for the time to come: and therefore are wee worthily punished for our idlenes, because the greater part stand at a stay euen in the childrens Catechisme. We are also further admonished that by how much the more vnderstanding any hath recei­ued, so much the more is hee bound to straine himselfe to communicate thereof vnto others: that so none be wise for himselfe in particular onely, but that euery one employ his talent to the mutuall edification of his brethren.

And are such as haue need of milke.] S. Paul in the 1. Cor. 3.1. vseth the like Metaphor, where hee blameth them for the same fault: or at the least not very much diuers from this. For he saith they were not able to beare strong meate, be­cause they were carnall. Milke then is the doctrine of the first beginnings, to enter them which as yet know nothing. S. Peter takes it in another sense, when hee wils vs to desire the sincere milke of the word, that wee may grow thereby, 1. Pet. 2.2. For there is a double infancie: one in malice, and another in vnderstanding. S. Paul saith in another place, Be not children in vnderstanding, but in malice, 1. Cor. 14.20. So then they which are so tender and delicate that they can­not receiue a doctrine a little higher than the first rudi­ments, are called children by way of reproch. For the true vse of the ministerie of the word is to frame vs in such wise as we may grow to be perfect men, according to the mea­sure of the age of the fulnes of Christ; and not to be as chil­dren wauering and carried about with euery winde of do­ctrine: as it is said, Ephes. 4.13.14. I grant, those are to bee borne with that haue not yet tasted Christ, if so be they be not yet capable of strong meate: but if hee which ought to increase according to the time he hath had, doth notwith­standing alwaies continue in his infancie, he is vnworthie to be pardoned. For we know that Isaiah brands the repro­bates [...] [Page 108]mongst them I say, there is no lesse carelesnesse, than if the doctrine were wholy forbidden them. Thus for want of ex­ercise we are blindfolded still, and destitute of all sound iudgement.

CHAP. VI.

1 Therefore, leauing the doctrine of the beginning of Christ, let vs be led forward vnto perfection, not laying againe the foundation of Repentance from dead workes, and of faith towards God.

2 Of the doctrine of Baptismes, and laying on of hands, &c. of the resurrection from the dead, and of eternall iudg­ment.

WHerefore leauing, Vers. 1 &c.] After he hath sharpely re­prooued them, he exhorteth them that in leauing the beginnings, they goe on forward ayming to the marke. For he calles the doctrine of beginning, the rudi­ments by which the ignorant are to begin, when they be receiued into the Church. Now in that he commands them to leaue such rudiments, or beginnings, his meaning is, not that the faithfull should forget them, but that they should not sticke fast, as it were, in them: the which is better known by the similitude of laying the foundation, which by and by followeth. For when an house is to be builded, men must neuer shrinke away from the foundation: and yet notwith­standing it were a mockerie to be alwaies about that, & to goe no further. For howsoeuer the foundation of the building is to be laid, yet he which shall alwaies busie him­selfe about that, neuer fitting or preparing matter where­withall to raise vp the building; shall he not busie himselfe foolishly, and in vaine? In a word, as we are to beginne by the foundation, so the labour of the master builder is to ha­sten that the house also be raised vp in due season. The like is it in Christianitie. For the foundation is laid in vs by lear­ning [Page 109]the rudiments: but by and by after a more highe do­ctrine ought to follow, which may finish vp the whole buil­ding. Wherefore those who alwaies sticke in the first rudi­ments, goe forward but ill; because they propound no end vnto themselues. As if the master workman imploying his whole labour about laying the foundation, VVe ought not to content our selues with good begin­nings, but to aime to perfe­ction. should vtterly neglect to build any thing vpon it. And therefore he would haue our faith so laid in the beginnings, that it should still rise higher and higher, vntill at the last it bee perfected by continuall increases.

Of repentance from dead workes.] He had respect here to the forme vsed in the Catechisme. From whence wee may draw a probable coniecture that this Epistle was not writ­ten by and by after the publishing of the Gospel, but rather after there was some forme of gouernment vsed in the Churches. The forme was, that he which was newly instru­cted in religion, made a confession of his faith, before hee was baptized. Now there were certaine articles, the which the Pastor demanded of them: as may be seene by many te­stimonies of the ancient Fathers: and the examination was chiefly vpon the confession of faith, which wee commonly call the Symbole or Creede of the Apostles. This was as the first entrance into the Church, for those who being alrea­die of age, meant to become Christians; as those who be­fore were strangers from the faith in Christ. The Apostle makes mention of this custome, because no long time was giuen to such new conuerts to be taught in the first grounds of the Christian religion. For a schoolmaster teacheth chil­dren their A, B, C: because they might foorthwith come to know greater things.

But let vs consider what the Apostle saith. He names re­pentance and faith, wherein consists the whole perfection of the Gospell. For what other thing doth Christ commaund to his Apostles, but that they should preach faith and repen­tance? Luk. 24.47. And therfore when S. Paul meant to pro­test that he had faithfully discharged his dutie, he alleageth for himselfe that he had diligently and continually taught [Page 110]them from house to house, to imprint these two things in the hearts of his Auditors, to wit, Repentance towards God, and faith towards our Lord Iesus Christ, Act. 20.20.21. May it not seeme absurd then that the Apostle should command them here to leaue faith and repentance, wherein they were to perseuere the whole course of their liues? But in adding from dead workes, he shewes that he speakes of the first repen­tance, when men began first to be Christians. For although euery sinne be a dead worke, because it begets death, or, be­cause it proceedes from the spirituall death of the soule; yet notwithstanding all the faithfull which are alreadie rege­nerate by the Spirit of God, are not properly said to repent themselues of dead workes. True it is, that regeneration is but begun in them; but how little soeuer this seede of the new life be in them, yet that is the cause why they are no more reputed dead in his sight. Wherfore the Apostle com­prehends not all repentance in generall, wherein we ought carefully to meditate, and to exercise our selues day and night: but he onely meanes that beginning of repentance, by which those who being euen newly conuerted to the faith, did enter into the way of newnes of life. Also the word faith, signifies that briefe summe of the doctrine of godli­nes, which is commonly called the Articles of the Faith. Hereunto also appertaines, The resurrection from the dead, and eternall iudgement. For these two things are the greatest secrets of the heauenly wisedome: yea euen the very marke of all our religion, whereat wee ought to aime all our whole life. But because one and the same thing is taught other­wise to the rude and ignorant, than to those that haue pro­fited somewhat alreadie; the Apostle notes the common forme of questioning; The points of catechisme v­sed in the Pri­matiue Church. Doest thou beleeue the resurrection of the dead? Doest thou beleeue there is an eternall life? These are things fit for children, and onely for once: wherefore to come and demaund the same things againe, were but to go backward.

Of the doctrine of Baptismes:] Vers. 2 Some reade these two members of Baptismes and doctrine apart: but I had rather [Page 111]reade them together; of the doctrine of Baptismes: although I expound it otherwise than others doe: to wit, that it is a forme of speech by way of apposition, as the Grammarians call it: as thus, not laying againe the foundation of repen­tance, of faith toward God, of the resurrection from the dead: which is the doctrine of Baptismes, and the imposi­tion of hands. Therefore if these two members, The do­ctrine of Baptismes, and the laying on of hands, be inclosed by a parenthesis, it will agree best with the order of the text. For if wee reade them not by way of apposition, there will an absurditie follow, in that one and the same thing is twice repeated. For what doctrine is there in Baptisme, but that which he here recites of faith towards God, of repentance, of eternall iudgement, and such like? Moreouer, Chryso­stome thinkes the Apostle puts Baptismes here in the plurall number, because they did in a manner abolish the first Bap­tisme by returning to the first rudiments. To which opinion I agree not: for this doctrine is not appointed to many Baptismes. But hee calles Baptismes, the ceremonies and forme which they vsed in publike Baptisme, or the daies ap­pointed to baptise.

He ioyneth the laying on of hands with Baptisme, be­cause as there were two orders of those which were newly instructed, so was there also a double ceremonie. For those who were strangers came not to Baptisme, till they had made confession of their faith: therefore as touching these, the order of instruction and catechising went before Baptisme. But the children of the faithfull, in as much as they were adopted from their mothers wombe, and apper­tained to the bodie of the Church, by the right of the pro­mise, they were baptized from their infancie: and after they were growne to some discretion, and had been instructed in the faith, they also presented them to be publikely catechi­sed. Thus it was done to these after Baptisme: but then an other signe was added, to wit, the imposition of hands. This onely place witnesseth sufficiently that the originall of this ceremonie came from the Apostles: which notwithstanding [Page 112]hath since been turned to superstition: which the world hath almost alwaies been accustomed to doe with good and holy ordinances, erring and degenerating still to corrup­tions. For some haue made vs beleeue it is a Sacrament, whereby the spirit of regeneration is conferred. By which fancie they haue dismembred Baptisme: for they haue transported that which is proper vnto it, to the imposition of hands. Know we then that this ceremonie was instituted by the first authors, to the end it might be a solemne man­ner of prayer, as S. Augustine calles it. True it is that by this signe they approoued of the faith of those who were alrea­die out of the state of infancie: but they meant nothing lesse than thereby to rent and teare in pieces the vertue of Baptisme. The institution of laying on of hands is to be retained: but the superstition must be cor­recled. Wherefore wee are at this day to keepe the pure institution, and to correct the superstition. Besides, this place serueth vs to prooue the Baptisme of little children. For to what purpose should one selfesame doctrine be called, to some the doctrine of Baptismes, and to others the laying on of hands: vnlesse that the latter sort were instructed in the faith, after they had alreadie receiued Baptisme, so as there remained no more vnto them, but the imposition of hands?

3 And this will we doe if God permit.

4 For it is vnpossible that they which were once lightened, and haue tasted of the heauenly gift, and were made partakers of the holy Ghost,

5 And haue tasted of the good word of God, and of the powers of the world to come:

6 If " or, fall again. they fall away, should be renued againe by repentance: seeing they crucifie againe to themselues the Sonne of God, and make a mocke of him.

ANd this will we do, Vers. 3 &c.] Behold here a terrible and fear­full threatning: but the Apostle thus thunders, to the end the Iewes should not flatter themselues too much in their carelesnes, by despising the grace of God. As if he should say, there is no staying till to morrow, because this [Page 113]opportunitie of going forward will not last alwaies. For it is not in the power of man to passe from the entrance vn­to the marke, as oft as pleaseth him, but the finishing of our course is a particular gift of God.

That those which were once inlightened,] Vers. 4 This place hath giuen many occasion to reiect this Epistle, and especially because the Nouatians armed themselues therewith to de­nie pardon to those that had falne. Those therefore of the West especially, haue doubted whether this Epistle were to be beleeued, because they were pressed with the Nouatian sect, and had not knowledge enough to refute their argu­ments. But when we haue skanned the Apostles meaning, we shall by and by see there is nothing here that doth any way fauour so absurd an errour. Others who acknowledge the authoritie of this Epistle, and allow it for holy; willing to auoid the absurditie, doe winde themselues out from it, onely by way of cauill. For some there are who take this word impossible, for difficult, or, for a thing that very rarely comes to passe: the which is farre wide from the significati­on of the word. There are some others, howbeit more in number; who restraine it to that repentance, whereby newe Conuerts were wont to be prepared vnto baptisme in the auncient Church. A like matter; as if the Apostle had inioy­ned them that were conuerted to fast, or to doe some such like thing. Moreouer what great thing should the Apostle haue said, if he had denied that that kind of repentance which is but a dependance of Baptisme, might be renued a­gaine? He threatens an horrible vengeance of God to fall vpon all those that reiect the grace of God which they haue once receiued. What grauitie or waight were then I pray you in this sentence, and what terrible thunderbolt were there in it to feare those who were foolishly become secure and carelesse, if so be it did only admonish vs that there were no place left for the first repentance? for so this would stretch it selfe to all kinde of sinne. What shall we say then? for seeing the Lord offereth mercie to all without exceptiō: what reason is there that any (by such an absurditie) should [Page 114]be debarred of it for any cause whatsoeuer.

The knot then of this question is in these words, if they fall againe. So then whosoeuer shal vnderstand the force thereof, shall easily winde himselfe out of all difficultie. Now it must be noted that there is a double falling: the one particular, Falles, general, and particular. the other generall: He which hath failed in one kind, yea be it that he hath failed in many kinds, such a one is fallen from the state of a Christian man. Thus all sinnes are so many falls. But the Apostle disputes not here of theft, periurie, Great diffe­rence between falling into some particu­lar sinne: and a fiuall apostacie murder, drunkennes, adulterie, or of some such like vice; but he speakes of a finall falling away from the gospel, so as the sinner offends not God onely in one kinde, but wholly renounceth his grace. And to the ende this may be the better vnderstood, there must be an antithesis supplied betweene the graces of God which he hath recited, and this fall. VVho they be that are exclu­ded from hope of pardon. For he falles away, who reuolts from the word of God, who quencheth the light of it, who depriues himselfe of the tast of the heauenly gift, who forsakes his participation of the holy Spirit. This is wholy to renounce God. We see now then, who they be whom hee excludeth from the hope of par­don: to wit, those Apostatates, who runne away from the knowledge of the Gospel of Christ, which before they had receiued; and from the grace of God; which cannot befall any, but such a one as sinneth against the holy Ghost. For he which violates the second Table of the lawe, or transgres­seth the first table by ignorance, is not yet guiltie of such a reuolting: neither doth God so depriue any of his grace (the Reprobate excepted) as that he leaues them without a­ny hope of pardon.

If any demaund why the Apostle maketh mention here of such an Apostasie, Question. seeing he writ to the faithfull, who were farre enough off from so wicked a disloyalty? Answere. I answer, he shewes them the daunger thereof beti [...]es, that beeing warned; they might be armed against it. And let vs obserue it well; for when we erre from the right way, we are not onely readie to excuse our faults to others, but are as ready to beguile our selues. Satan then steales in vpon vs, and by [Page 115]subtile sleights drawes vs away: so as we are fallen, Satan drawes not the wicked into this seare­full sinne at the first push, but by d [...]grees: we are therefore to preuent great faults by auoiding the lesse. After a long neglect of holy duties, followes an alienation of the minde and affections. whilest we thinke we stand. Thus wee fall by degrees, till at the last we runne headlong into destruction. And it is a thing which common experience doth daily teach vs in very many. Therefore it is not without cause that the Apostle forewar­neth all the Disciples of Christ to looke vnto themselues in time. For long negligence growes easily more and more vpon vs as a Lethargie: and after that followes an aliena­tion of minde and affections. Now wee are yet to note by the way with what titles and commendations hee adornes the knowledge of the Gospell. He calles it an inlightening: from whence it followes, that men are blinde till Christ, which is the light of the world, doe inlighten them. He calls it the taste of the heauenly gift: thereby signifying, that the gifts which are conferred vnto vs in Christ, 1 are farre aboue nature, or the world: 2 and yet notwithstanding that they are tasted by faith. He calles it the partaking of the holy Ghost: 3 because it is he that distributes to euery one (according as he wil) al that light and vnderstanding, without which none can say, that Iesus is the Lord, 1. Cor. 12.3. as also that hee opens the eyes of our vnderstanding, and reueales Gods se­crets vnto vs. He calles it the taste of the good word of God: 4 thereby signifying, that Gods will is not manifested vnto vs in the same hand oner head, but that it brings therewithall vnto vs a sweete delectation. In a word, by this epithite hee shewes what difference there is betweene the Law and the Gospell: because the Law containes in it nothing but seue­ritie and iudgement: but the Gospell is a sweete and gra­tious testimony of the loue of God, and of his fatherly kind­nes towards vs. Lastly, 5 he calles it the taste of the powers of the world to come: whereby he signifies, that by faith we are receiued into the heauenly kingdome, that in spirit wee might behold that blessed immortalitie, which otherwise is hidden from our mindes.

Let vs assure our selues then that the Gospell is not knowne of vs to any purpose, but by the illumination of the holy Ghost: and that in such wise, that being carried aboue [...] [Page 118]But if any hauing fallen doe againe recouer himselfe, wee may say that such a one came not so farre as to an vtter re­uolt, howbeit otherwise he had committed grieuous sinnes. Seeing they crucifie againe to themselues the Sonne of God. He addeth this also to defend Gods seueritie against the slaun­ders of men. For if God should pardon Apostataes, he must needes giue his Sonne as a mocking stocke vnto them: vn­worthie they are then that God should pardon them. More­ouer, the reason why he saith that Christ is crucified againe, is because we die with him vnder this condition, to exercise our selues continually in newnes of life. Those then which fall back againe into death, haue need of a second sacrifice: as we shall see in the tenth chapter. Crucifie to themselues: that is to say, as much as in them is. For so they endeuour to doe. And Christ should bee brought againe in triumph by mockage, and dishonour, if men could returne to him when they list, after they haue let loose the bridle vnto themselues to Apostasie and reuolting.

7 For the earth which drinketh in the raine that commeth oft vpon it, and bringeth foorth herbes meete for them by whom it is dressed, receiueth blessing of God.

8 But that which beareth thornes and briars, is reprooued, and is neere vnto cursing: whose end is to be burned.

9 But beloued, we haue perswaded our selues better things of you, and such as accompanie saluation, though we thus speake.

10 For God is not vnrighteous, that hee should forget your worke, and labour of loue, which ye shewed towards his name, in that ye haue ministred vnto the Saints, and yet minister.

FOr the earth &c.] Vers. 7 It is a very fit similitude to moue our affections to the desire of profiting in due season. For as the earth cannot bring foorth good corne in haruest, vnlesse the feede spring vp soone after it is cast into the ground: so if wee will become good fruite, the Lord no sooner foweth his word, but it should forthwith take root in vs, and should also shew the power of it in our liues. For it is not to be ex­pected [Page 119]it should euer bring forth fruit in vs, if we either suf­fer it to be choked, or to be corrupted in vs. But as the simi­litude is very fit; so also are we wisely to apply it to the A­postles meaning. The earth, saith he, which drinkes in the raine, presently after seed time if it brings not forth of the kernell a bastard or wilde grasse, is at the length brought to the ripenesse of good corne, by the blessing of God: so also they that receiue the seede of the Gospel into their hearts, and of this seede doe bring forth a good and natu­rall blade, doe alwaies grow better and better, till they bring forth ripe fruite. Contrariwise, the earth which hath beene plowed and watered, and yet brings forth nothing but thornes and briars, giues no hope to the reaper: Ver. 8 but which is worse, the more that which is come forth groweth, the more is he left hopelesse.

And therefore the onely remedie is, that the labourer set this field on fire, which is so full of naughtie and vnprofita­ble grasse. So they also, who by their loose and wicked affe­ctions, doe corrupt the seede of the Gospel, that in their life they giue no token at all of profiting and going forward, they shew themselues to be cast-awaies, so as they giue no hope of any good haruest. The Apostle then in this place not onely handles the fruit of the Gospel: but still holds on his exhortation, that we should imbrace the gospel with a cheerefull and readie affection. And that as soone as seede time is done, there do by and by some fruit appeare. Third­ly, that after much and often watering, increasings doe fol­low. Whereas we haue put meete hearbes, or profitable, o­thers translate Hearbs of season. Both significations agree well, but the last is referred to the time, the first to the quali­tic. As for the allegoricall senses wherewithall expositours doe please themselues, I let them passe, because they are far wide from the authors meaning.

But beloued we are perswaded better of you, &c.] Verse 9 Because the former sentences were like thunderings, by which the readers might be ouerwhelmed, and altogether amazed, it was needfull now to allaie this sharpnesse: and therefore [Page 120]he saith, that though he hath thus spoken, it was not because he had conceiued so hard an opinion of them. And truely whosoeuer he be that doth indeed desire to profit by teach­ing or exhorting, ought thus to deale with his Disciples, to wit, that he rather increase affection in them, than any way diminish the same. For there is nothing that doth more dis­courage vs to heare the word of God, than when we see we are reputed for desperate persons. For this cause the Apostle here protests that he admonisheth the Iews, because he had good hope of them, and desired to bring them to saluation. We gather from this practise of the Apostle, It is profitable that the elect themselues should be som­times sharpely reprooued. that it is need­full to reprooue sharpely, and with great vehemencie, not the Reprobates onely, but euen the Elect themselues, and those whome we account as the children of God.

For God is not vniust, &c.] These words import as much as if he should haue said, Obiection. that of these good beginnings, he hopes there will be a good ending. But here ariseth a diffi­cultie; for it seemes as if he meant to say that God is behol­ding vnto men, in regard of that they haue done for him. I hope well saith he, of your saluation, why? because God is not vnrighteous, that he should forget your workes. By this it may seeme that he buildes their saluation vpon workes, and brings in God as one indebted vnto them. Thus the Sophi­sters who oppose the merits of workes to the grace of God, doe debate this point, and insist vpon it very much; God, say they, is not vniust. For from hence they gather, that it should be vniust with God, if he giue not to the merit of workes, the reward of eternall saluation. Answere. I answer in fewe wordes, that it is not the Apostles meaning, expresly to deale here about the cause of our saluation; and therefore we are not to iudge of the merit of workes by this place: neither yet can we hence resolue, No other cause of our saluati­on but Gods free mercie. what it is that is due to workes. The Scripture euery where shews none other cause of our saluation, than the free mercie of God. Now whereas God in many places promiseth reward to workes, this de­pends vpon his free promise, by which he hath adopted vs for his children, and reconciled vs vnto himselfe, not impu­ting [Page 121]our sinnes vnto vs. Reward then is appointed vnto workes, not for any merit that is in them, Reward is not giuen vnto workes for any merit, but vpon Gods meere liberalitie. but by the meere liberalitie of God. Yea euen this free recompence of works proceeding from the free bountie and liberalitie of God, hath no place till we be receiued into fauour by the meanes of Christ. We gather from hence then, that God in doing this, payes nothing that he owes vs, but keepes and fulfilles that promise, which of his free good will he hath made, God beholds not our works, but rather his own grace in our works. be­cause he beholds both our selues and our workes with fa­uour and pardon; or to speake yet more properly, he consi­ders not our works so much, as his own grace in our works. Now ye see how it is, that he forgets not our works, because in them he acknowledgeth both himselfe, and the worke of his Spirit. This is also that righteousnesse which the Apostle meaneth, to wit, because he cannot denie himselfe. Thus this place is agreeable to the sentence of S. Paul, where he saith, he which hath begun a good worke in you will per­forme it to the day of Christ, Philip. 1.6. For what shall God finde in vs, whereby he might be mooued to loue vs, vnlesse it be that which he hath giuen vs of his own before? In a word, the Sophisters deceiue themselues, who imagine a mutuall relation and correspondencie between the righte­ousnesse of God, and that merit of our workes: for in this re­gard God rather respects himselfe, and his own gifts, that he might perfect vnto the end, that which he hath begunne in vs by his free goodnesse, beeing no way prouoked there­vnto by any seruice that comes from vs. Thus (I say) you see what the righteousnes of God is in the reward of works; to wit, because he is faithfull, and true of his promise, and so hath made himselfe debter to vs: not in receiuing any thing of vs, but in promising vs all things freely; as saith S. Au­gustine.

Your labour of loue.] By this word he signifies that we must not spare, nor flie any paines, if we will doe our dutie to­wards our neighbours: for the question is not onely of hel­ping them with siluer, but also with counsell, and industrie, and by all the waies and meanes we can. There is need then [...] [Page 124]remember then that we haue not such a Christian life as is perfect in all his parts, Faith and cha­ritie must goe together. vnlesse wee applie our studies to fol­low faith and charitie together.

For the full assurance of hope.] Because many who made profession of the Christian faith, were distracted with diuers opinions, or els were inwrapped with many superstitiōs, he requires that they be so setled in the certaintie of faith, that they now wauer no more, nor remaine in suspence, carried about as they had been wont with euery new inuention of mans braine. Now this commandement belongs to vs all: for as the truth of God is sure and stable in it selfe, so also is it required that our faith which is built and rests it self there­upon be true, certaine, and surmounting all doubtings. See here then what this Greeke word Plerophoria imports, Plerophoria. to wit, an assured perswasion, whereby the spirit of euery faith­full man concludes and resolues in it selfe, that it is vtterly vnlawful to call into doubt or question those things which God (that cannot lie nor deceiue) hath once pronounced. It is a sinne to doubt of the truth of that which God hath pronoun­ced. Hope, is here taken for faith, because of the affinitie which is betweene them. Notwithstanding it seemes the Apostle did expresly place it here, because he spake of perscuerance. We may also gather from hence, how farre faith is off from that generall apprehension which is common both to the wic­ked and euen to the Diuels themselues. There is great difference be­tweene true faith, and a ge­nerall appre­hension. For they also be­leeue that God is iust and true: but yet notwithstanding from hence they conceiue no good hope at all, because they doe not therewithall apprehend the fatherly goodnes of God in Christ. Let vs know then that true faith is alwaies coupled with hope.

He saith to the end, or euen vnto perfection: because they might know they were not yet come thereunto, and there­fore that they should bethinke themselues to profit in faith more and more. He vseth this word care, or diligence, to the end they might vnderstand that they were not to nuzzle themselues vp still in carelesnes, but to bend themselues couragiously to trauaile towards this assurance in good ear­nest. For it is not a small matter to ascend aboue the hea­uens; [Page 125]especially such as we be who are scarse able to creepe vpon the ground. And withall, that it is no small matter to leape ouer so many stumbling blocks of offence: neither is there any thing more difficult than to hold our meditations in heauen and vpon heauenly things, because all the whole strength of our nature bends downwards; Satan also is not wanting to draw our mindes towards the earth and earthly things by infinite deuices. For this cause therefore the A­postle commands vs to flie all carelesnes and sluggishnes of heart.

But that ye follow those who by faith and patience.] Vers. 12 Against this lasines, he puts this studie of following, and imitation. It is as much then as if he had said, it behooues you to haue a cheerefulnes of heart in perseuering. But this yet hath grea­ter weight, when he aduertiseth them that the Fathers them­selues did not obtaine the promises, but with an inuinceable strength of faith: for examples doe represent the matter vn­to vs with ye greater liuelines. If the doctrine should only be proposed simply and plainly, it would not moue vs so much as when we see that that which is required of vs, is fulfilled in the person of Abraham. Now the example of Abraham is brought in, not because there was none other, but because his example was the most excellent aboue all others. For Abraham had this in common with all the faithfull to be­leeue: but it is not without great cause that he was establi­shed, and called the father of all the faithfull. No marueile therefore if the Apostle doe make speciall choise of him a­mongst others: as of him vnto whom hee would all men should looke as oft as they would finde a cleere mirror of faith. He saith, faith and patience, as if hee should say, a con­stant faith which hath also patience ioyned therewith. For faith is first required: but because many who at the begin­ning might seeme to haue an admirable faith, haue yet not­withstanding by and by waxen carelesse; patience is a true approbation of that faith which is not vaine, nor such as will vanish with the time. When he saith that we obtaine, & receiue the promises by faith, he beates downe the opinion of [...] [Page 128]by his owne name? This you see is the principall thing now in hand: but we are here to note two things by the way: first, 1 that we ought to sweare by the name of God, when we are required to sweare: 2 secondly, that an oath is permit­ted vnto Christians, because it is a lawfull remedie to ap­pease contentions. God doth expresly charge vs that we sweare by his name: and if we mingle any other with his, he protests that it is a prophanation of an oath. 1 Now there are three speciall reasons of this. For when we are destitute of the meanes to bring the truth to light, it is not lawfull to haue recourse to any other than to God, 2 who is himselfe the eternall truth. Secondly, because it is he who knoweth the hearts, Ierem. 17.10. His office is plucked from him, whē any other is called to be a iudge in those things which are hidden from the iudgement of men. Thirdly, because that not onely in swearing, 3 we call him to witnesse; but we also meane thereby that he should shew his vengeance vpō the partie periured, if we speake and sweare falsely. There­fore it is not to be marueiled at, if he be so seuerely angrie against them which sweare by another name: for it is to take away from him so much of his honour.

Now whereas the scripture doth sometimes vse other formes of swearing; that doth not crosse this doctrine. For the faithfull doe not sweare by the heauen or by the earth, as if they did attribute any diuinitie vnto them, but by such indirect oathes, they haue respect to God onely. For there are diuers kinds of oathes. 1 The first and the cheifest is this, when we call God for iudge; and doe directly make our ap­peale vnto his iudgment seat. 2 The second is, when we name the things that we loue greatly, as our life, our head, or some such other like thing. 3 The third, when we take the creatures to witnesse in Gods presence. But in all these to speake pro­perly, we sweare by none other than by God. Wherefore they who contend that it is lawfull to ioyne the Saints that are dead as companions with God, and that the right of punishing should be attributed vnto them, such doe no lesse shew their malice than their beastlinesse. Besides, this [Page 129]this place as hath beene said, teacheth, It is lawfull to take an oath. that there is a lawfull vse of an oath among Christians: the which we are to note wel against those giddie spirits, who would willingly bring out of vse that holy rule of an oath which God hath giuen in his lawe. For out of question the Apostle here speakes of the manner of an oath, as of an holy thing allowed and ap­prooued of God. And it is also to be noted that he doth not onely say that it was thus in vse in old time, but also testifies that it lasteth euen yet to this day. Let vs then take an oath for an helpe to maintaine the truth, when we want other proofes.

So God, willing more abundantly, &c.] Vers. 17 See how the Lord applies himselfe to our dulnesse and slownesse to beleeue; and how he vpholds vs; euen as a most gentle father is wont to do his children. Because he seeth that we rest not satisfied with his bare and naked word, he addes an oath, to the end he might the more effectually confirme and ratifie the same in our hearts. And hereby also we may see how profitable and necessarie it is to haue such an assurance of the loue he beares vs, that we might haue no more accasion to wauer or tremble. For as God forbids vs to vse his name without cause, or for a light cause, or a thing of nothing, and threa­tens all them with his sharpe vengeance, who shall rashly and vnaduisedly take vp the same in vaine. And as he also commands that we reuerently vse the maiestie of his name; so by both, he shewes that he hath his name in great price and estimation. The certentie then of our saluation must needes be a matter of great consequence, seeing he that for­biddes to take vp his name in vaine, vouchsafeth to sweare to confirme vs in the assurance of it. Our saluation is in great ac­count with God seeing he sticks not to confirme vs in the assu­rance thereof by his oath. We may also gather from hence, in what estimation our saluation is before god: seeing that to prouide for the certaintie thereof he not one­ly supports our incredulitie, but leauing as it were part of his own honour, and yeilding much more to our weaknes then he should, doeth yet notwithstanding by this meanes graciously remedie the same.

To the heires of promise.] It seemes he specially speaks of [...] [Page 132]who take hope in this place for the thing hoped for: but we rather adde hereunto, that the Apostle speakes not of a na­ked promise hanging in the aire, but of a promise which we receiue by faith: or to speake in one word, hope here signi­fies the promise apprehended by faith. By this word to ob­taine, as also by the word hope, he notes out such a constan­cie as he hath touched heretofore.

Which hope we haue as an anker of the soule, Vers. 19 &c.] It is a good­ly similitude in that he compares faith to an anker cast out and fast rooted in the word of God. For the truth is, that whilest we flote vp and downe in the salt sea of this world, we are not staied vpon sure and firme ground, but we reele as a shippe to and fro in the middest of the sea, yea euen in a troublesome sea tossed with floods and waues. For the di­uell he ceaseth not to raise vp infinite stormes and tempests that might at once ouerturne and drowne our shippe, if so be our anker be not deepely fastened euen to the very bot­tome. And indeed let vs turne our cies whither soeuer wee will, we shall perceiue no firme land whereupon to stand safely: but which way soeuer our senses doe turne them, we shall see nothing but water: yea such waters, whose waues doe swell, and roare, lifting vp themselues on high, & threa­tening our destruction. But as the anker is cast into the mid­dest of the water, into an obscure and hidden place, and whilest it lieth so hidden, it keepes the ship in safetie, that it is not drowned of the waues, vnto which it is exposed and laid open: so ought we to fixe and fasten our hope in God, who is inuisible. Herein stands the difference; that the anker is cast downwards, because it findes fastening in the earth: and our hope is raised vp on high, and flieth into heauen, because it findes nothing vpon earth, Our hope finds no so [...]ting vp­on earth: and therefore we cast it not downwards but vpwards. or in the world vpon which it may safely rest and stay it selfe securely: neither ought it to rest it selfe vpon the creatures, but onely vpon God. And as the cable to which the anker is fastened, ioynes the shippe with the earth by a long and inuisible di­stance; so the truth of God is a cable by which we are knit vnto him, so as there can be no distance of place so farre off, [Page 133]neither yet any darknes be it neuer so thicke, that can let vs to cleaue still fast vnto him. Being thus made fast vnto God, howsoeuer wee must fight indeede daily against infinite stormes and tempests, yet are we notwithstanding so out of danger, that we shall not perish with our shippe. And there­fore he saith, that it is an anchor both sure and stedfast. For no tempestuousnes of waues can be so great, that they should be able to rent the anchor in pieces, or to breake the cable, or that the shippe by meanes thereof should be clouen in twaine. This indeed falles out vpon the Sea: but the power of God is farre otherwise to sustaine and keepe vs: and is otherwise also, as well in regard of the efficacie of hope, as of the stablenes of the word of God.

And it entreth into that which is within the vaile.] We haue said alreadie, that faith shall finde nothing which shall not be fleeting and vanishing, till it come neere vnto God: of necessitie therefore it must pearce euen into heauen. But be­cause the Apostle hath to doe with the Iewes, hee alludes to the ancient Tabernacle, and saith that they must not rest themselues in the things which are seene, but that they must enter euen into the secret place, which is hidden behind the vaile: as if he should say, you must passe beyond all the ex­ternall figures and old shadowes, that faith may rest it selfe vpon Christ alone. Now wee are to note this reason well, Faith must passe beyond all externall shadowes, that it may rest it self vpon Christ alone. to wit, that as Christ is entred into heauen, euen so ought our faith to ascend vp thither after him. For by this we are taught to cast the eye of our faith vpon nothing els. For men shall lose all their labour to seeke God in his maiestie, seeing it is too high for them to attaine vnto: but it is Christ who rea­cheth vs his hand to bring vs into heauen. And this was shadowed out of olde euen vnder the Law. For the high Priest entred into the Sanctuarie not only in his own name, but also in the name of all the people: he bare, as you would say, the twelue tribes in thither in his breast and vpon his shoulder, when in remembrance of them, twelue precious stones were imbroidered vpon his breast-plate, and their names engrauen vpon the two precious stones which hee [...] [Page 136]God, adornes him with this title; Reioyce greatly O daugh­ter Zion (saith he) behold thy righteous King commeth to thee, Zach. 9.9. thereby signifying vnto vs that the righte­ousnes whereof without this wee should bee destituted, is brought vnto vs by the comming of Christ.

The second similitude which the Apostle notes, 2 is in the kingdome of peace. Now this peace is the fruite of that righ­teousnesse whereof hee spake. Herehence it followes that wheresoeuer the kingdome of Christ shall be spread, there of necessitie must this peace be in abundance, as is shewed by these places following; Isai. 2.4. and 9.7. and 11.6. and 65.25. In what sense the Hebrues vsually take this word peace. ond other the like. Moreouer, because peace, accor­ding to the Hebrues, signifies prosperitie, or an happie e­state; wee may take it in this sense euen in this place: not­withstanding I had rather vnderstand it of that inward peace, which setteth consciences at quiet and in securitie before the throne of God. Wee cannot possibly esteeme of of this benefit according as the excellencie thereof doth re­quire, Peace of con­science can ne­uer be rightly esteemed, till we haue been exercised with the disquietnes thereof. vnlesse we be taught by the contrarie, what miserie it is to be tormented continually with vnquietnes of consci­ence: which all of vs must needes feele till such time as we being reconciled vnto God in Christ, haue our consciences thereby quieted.

Vers. 3. Without father.] I had rather to say so, than of an vnknowne father, as Erasmus doth translate. For the Apostle meant to signifie something more expresly, than to say that the race of Melchisedec was vnknowne, or base, and of little renowme. Neither doe I greatly stand about the discussing of an obiection which some doe make here: to wit, if wee take it so, the truth should not bee answerable to the figure, because Christ hath a father in heauen, and a mother in earth. For the Apostle presently after expounds his owne meaning, 3 when he addes without kinred. He doth then ex­empt Melchisedec from the common order of being borne: thereby shewing that he was eternall, so as none are to goe search out among men from what race he newly issued. It is certaine that he was begotten of a father and a mother: but [Page 137]the Apostle speakes not of him as of a priuate man: but ra­ther as of one clothed with the person of Christ. And there­fore he forbids vs to consider ought in him but that which the Scripture teacheth. For in handling all those things which belong to Christ, it is needfull to deale with such re­uerence, that wee know nothing but that which proceedes out of the mouth of God. Now seeing the Spirit of God, bringing in the rarest and most excellent King of that time, yet makes no mention at all of his birth, neither yet after­wards speakes any one word of his death; is it not as much as if by this meanes his eternitie had been set foorth vnto vs? Now that which was shadowed in Melchisedec, was truly manifested in Christ. Thus then we are to content our selues with this mediocritie, that when the Scripture propo­seth Melchisedec vnto vs as a man that was neuer borne, or which neuer died; it shewes vnto vs as in a mirror, that there is neither beginning nor end in Christ.

Moreouer, from hence we also learne what reuerence and sobrietie is required to be in vs, as touching the spirituall mysteries of God. For the Apostle is not onely willingly ig­norant of that which he findes not in the whole Scriptures, but would that wee should be ignorant of it also. For que­stionlesse it is not lawfull to pronounce any thing of Christ at randon, nor yet after our shallow capacitie. Melchisedec then is not to be considered here as a man of some meane place, but as an holy and sacred figure of Christ. Neither are we to thinke that either his genealogie or death was omit­ted to be spoken of by chance, or vnaduisednes: but that the holy Ghost rather did it of purpose, to the end he might raise vp our mindes aboue the common order of men. For this cause their coniecture is very vnlikely who say, that Melchisedec was Shem one of the sonnes of Noah. For come we once to speake of a certaine and knowne man, this third similitude betweene Melchisedec and Christ will not be firme. But was likened to the Sonne of God. That is to say, so farre foorth as the manner of likenes would beare. For the proportion must alwaies bee held which is betweene the [...] [Page 140]if one should say, because they were of the number of chil­dren, or sonnes: for the Apostle reasons not, as though the Priests receiued the tithes, because they were of the number of the sonnes of Leui: but he makes a comparison of this whole tribe with Melchisedec on this manner; when God gaue power and authoritie to the Leuites to demand tithes of the people, therein God did appoint, and establish them aboue all the rest of the Israelites, although they were all begotten of one father. Now Abraham, who was the father of them all, did yet paie tithes to a Priest, which was a stran­ger: it followeth then, that all the successours of Abraham are inferiour to this Priest. Thus the right giuen to the Le­uites, was particular aboue all the rest of their brethren: But Melchisedec is placed in an high degree aboue any of them, so as he holds them all vnderneath him. Some thinke the Apostle speakes of the tenths, which the Leuites paied to the cheife Priests, as Numb. 18.26, 27, 28. But there is no reason why we should so restraine a generall speech. For that which I haue said is the most probable.

And blessed him which had the promises.] Ver. 6 This is the fifth point which the Apostle obserues in the comparison be­tweene Christ and Melchisedec. 5 Now he takes a principle which is held as the most certain of all: to wit, that the lesse is blessed of the greater. He afterward addes, that Melchise­dec blessed Abraham: whereof it followes, that Abraham is the lesser. But to the ende he might enlarge the matter, he againe adorns Abraham with an excellent title. For by how much the more excellent Abraham is, by so much the more is the dignitie of Melchisedec extolled. To this he hath re­spect when he saith, that Abraham receiued the promises, wherein he signifies that Abraham is that excellent perso­nage, and the first father of that holy nation, with which God made the couenant of eternall life. For it was no small honour vnto him, that he onely amongest all others should be chosen, as the man whom God betrusted with the right of adoption, and with the testimonie of his loue. Yet all this hindred not, but that he, with all these prerogatiues should [Page 141]submit himselfe to the Priest Melchisedec. Thus we cleare­ly see how great this Melchisedec was, to whome Abraham subiected himselfe in two things: 1 first in that he suffered himselfe to be blessed of him; and secondly, in that he offe­red him tithes, 2 as vnto him who did represent the person of God.

And without all contradiction, &c.] Vers. 7 In the first place we are to learne what this blessing here fignifies. It is a solemne praier, by which he that is placed in any excellent degree of honour, and publike office, doth recommend persons, and those that are committed vnto his gouernment particularly vnto God. There is also another kinde of blessing; which is when we pray one for another: a thing common among all the faithfull. But this blessing whereof the Apostle here makes mention, is a signe of a farre greater power and au­thoritie. Thus Isaack blessed his sonne Iacob, and Iacob bles­sed Ephraim and Manasses, the sonnes of Ioseph. Gen. 27.27. Gen. 48.15. For this was not a mutuall acte, wherein the sonne may doe as much for the father: but to the ende this blessing might be duely and lawfully performed, it was re­quired that he which did it should be a superiour, & should be in authoritie also aboue him whom hee blessed. Which is the better vnderstood by the 6. of Nūbers, 27. where com­mandement beeing giuen to the Priests to blesse the peo­ple, the promise is by and by added: to wit, that those whom they blessed, should be blessed of God. The blessing I say which the Priests pronounced was confirmed and ratified with such authoritie, that it was not so much the authoritie of men as the authoritie of God. For euen as in offering of sacrifices the Priest did represent the person of Christ, so also in blessing of the people he was but the minister and imbassadour of the high God. In this sense also is that bles­sing to be taken, whereof mention is made, Luk. 24.50. where Christ after he had lead his Apostles out of Bethania, lifted vp his hands on high and blessed them. No doubt he tooke this gesture of lifting vp the hands from the high Priests, to the ende he might shewe himselfe to be he by [Page 142]whom God the Father blesseth vs. This blessing also is men­tioned, Psal. 116.17. and 118.1. Now let vs apply this sen­tence to that which he handleth. Seeing the blessing of the Priest is a worke of God, so it is also a witnesse of prehemi­nencie, and of the excellent honour which God imparted vnto him. Melchisedec then tooke vnto himselfe the high­est degree in that he blessed Abraham. For he did it not at randon, but according to the right and authoritie of his Priestly function: it followes then that he is Abrahams su­periour. And yet with Abraham did God contract the co­uenant of saluation. To conclude then, euen this man al­though he were the most excellent of all others, yet he had one more excellent than he aboue him: to wit, Melchi­sedec.

Of whome it is witnessed that he liueth.] Ver. 8 As I haue alreadie said, he takes it as a proofe that Melchisedec liueth, because no mention is made of his death. True it is this hath no place in others, but there is great reason why it should haue place in Melchisedec, because he is the image and figure of Christ: for in as much as the question is here of the spirituall kingdome of Christ, and of his Priesthood; humane conie­ctures ought to haue no place: neither is it lawfull to knowe any more than that which the scriptures doe set before vs. Yet we are not to gather from hence, that this man who met Abraham, should be yet liuing: as some haue foolishly imagined. For this is to be referred to the qualitie of the person which Melchisedec sustained: to wit, in that he re­presented the person of the sonne of God. Moreouer the A­postle mindes to shew by these words, that the dignitie of Melchisedecks Priesthood is perpetuall, whereas the Priest­hood of the Leuites was but for a time. For thus he frames his argument, Those to whom the law assignes tithes to be paid, are mortall men: in which is shewed that the right of that Priesthood was once to be abolished, in regard they ended their liues. But the scripture makes no mention at all of the death of Melchisedec, when it speakes of the tithes that were paid vnto him: thus then he limits not the right of [Page 143]his Priesthood within any cōpasse of time, but rather close­ly shews that it endures for euer. Now this he addes, to the end it might not seeme that the law which immediatly fol­lowed did derogate any thing from the first, as the custome in other things is. For otherwise some might haue replied that this right of Priesthood which Melchisedec enioyed, is now abolished, because God gaue another law by Moses, by which he transported it ouer to the Leuites. But the A­postle preuents this reply, when he saith that the tithes were payd to the Leuites for a time, because they liued not al­waies: but that Melchisedec kept the right for euer which God had once giuen him, because he was immortall.

And to say as the thing is, &c.] He proceedes on further, Vers. 9 saying, that Leui himselfe who was then in the loynes of Abraham, was not exempt from this subiection, because Abraham in paying of tithes, did subiect both himselfe, and his posteritie also to the Priesthood of Melchisedec. But an obiection may bee thus framed to the contrarie, Obiection. that by the like reason Iudah also, of whose seede Christ was begot­ten, paid tithes. But this difficultie will be easily remoued, Answer. when wee shall consider two things, which amongst Chri­stians ought to be out of question. 1 For Christ is not simply reputed among the children of Abraham, as one amongst the rest, but by a speciall priuiledge is exempt from the common order. And that is it which himselfe saith, Mat. 22.42. If he be the sonne of Dauid, how then doth Dauid call him Lord? Wee see now that this argument from Leui to Christ holds not. Moreouer, seeing Melchisedec is the figure of Christ, what reason is there that he should be set to fight (as you would say) against him? For this common principle is to bee held, That which is placed beneath, doth not op­pose it selfe against the principall to which it is referred. Wherfore, seeing the figure is lesse than the truth, it cannot, neither ought it to bee opposite against it. For this combat ought to haue place among things of equalitie. Now the Apostle hath fully shewed by these fiue members, what comparison there is betweene Christ and Melchisedec. And [Page 144]hereby is refuted the brainsicke speculation of those who seeke the principall similitude in the offering of Bread and Wine. We see that the Apostle examines all things here ve­ry carefully and curiously (as it were) one after another. Name, place, perpetuitie, tithes, and the right of bles­sing. He obserues the name of the man, the place of his kingdome, the perpetuitie of his life, the right of tithes, and the right of blessing. Surely these things were of lesse importance than the oblation. Shall wee say that the Spirit of God had forgotten himselfe, so as to stay in these lesser things, and to omit that which is the principall, and wherein the pith of the matter lay? And I doe the more wonder that so many of the ancient Doctors of the Church haue been so farre be­sotted with this opinion, as to stand disputing here about the oblation of the Bread & Wine. Thus they say; Christ is a Priest after the order of Melchisedec: but Melchisedec offe­red bread and wine, it followes then that the sacrifice of bread and wine belongs to the Priesthood of Christ. The A­postle will speake fully hereafter of the ancient sacrifices: but of this new sacrifice of bread and wine, wil he not speak a word. How is it then that the Doctors of the Church came to be of this opinion? Truly euen because one error drawes on another, for hauing forged a sacrifice of the Supper of Christ, hauing receiued no such commandement from him: & so when they had once corrupted the supper by adding a sacrifice vnto it, they then made what shift they could (now here, now there) to borrow some colours to patch vp their error withall.

The application of this oblation of bread and wine plea­sed them as a thing seeming fit for the purpose: and by and by after it was receiued; but without iudgement or discre­tion. For who will graunt that these personages had a more cleere sight than the Spirit of God? and yet notwithstan­ding if wee receiue that which they teach, the holie Ghost should be condemned of vnaduisednes, because he obser­ued not a thing of so great consequence, especially seeing he handles this matter of set purpose. By this I conclude, that the ancient Fathers did forge vnto themselues such a [Page 145]sacrifice as Moses neuer thought of. For hee saith not that Melchisedec offered bread and wine to God; but rather to Abraham, and his companie. For these are his very words: And Melchisedec King of Shalem brought foorth bread and wine, and he was a Priest of the most high God. Therefore hee blessed him, &c. Gen. 14.18. This first fact which he recites was performed as he was a King, to wit, to feed such as were wearie in the way returning from the battaile. As touching the blessing it appertained to his office of Priesthood. And therefore if any mysterie were in this oblation, it was no o­therwise fulfilled in Christ, than when he nourisheth vs whē we are hungrie and wearied with trauaile. Now the Papists deserue to be laughed at againe and againe, who after they haue denied that there is any more bread and wine in the Masse after consecration, doe yet notwithstanding come in chanting their song of the sacrifice of bread and wine.

11 If therefore perfection had been by the Priesthood of the Leuits (for vnder it the law was established to the people) what needed it furthermore, that another Priest should rise after the order of Melchisedec, and not to be called after the order of Aa­ron?

12 For if the Priesthood be changed, then of necessitie must there be a change of the law.

13 For he of whom these things are spoken, pertaineth to an other tribe, whereof no man serued at the altar.

14 For it is euident that our Lord sprung out of Iudah, con­cerning the which tribe Moses spake nothing touching the Priesthood.

IF then perfection &c.] Vers. 11 The Apostle gathers from the same testimonie, that the old Testament was abolished by the comming of Iesus Christ. Hitherunto hee hath onely dealt with the person and office of the Priesthood. But because God had appointed the Priest to establish and confirme the law, it followes that if so bee the Priesthood be abolished, then the law must needes cease. To the end this may be the [...] [Page 148]the old time, because the Priesthood and the law was set o­uer to him. Well, we see the Apostles drift. He contends to prooue that the ceremonies ceased, seeing Christ is come with commandement to publish the new couenant. How can any thing be gathered from hence, that somewhat should be transported ouer to the ministers of Christ? for the onely person of Christ is opposed to Moses and Aaron. By what title then I pray you, dare the Romane Antichrist at­tribute vnto himselfe any authoritie? Truly it is not my pur­pose to stand to refute so sottish an impudencie: but it were very needfull to make this his pride (so full of sacriledge) knowne vnto the readers, to the ende they might be able cleerely to see and acknowledge how this good seruant of the seruants of Christ, cares not very much for the honour that is due to the master, and how like a beast he rentes the scriptures in pieces, to colour and cloke his tyranny withal.

For he of whome these things are spoken, &c.] Because the Apostle directs his speech to such as confessed Iesus the son of Marie to be the Christ; Vers. 13 he prooues that an end is put to the olde Priesthood, in regard this newe Priest who is placed in the roome thereof, is of another tribe than that of Leui. For according to the law, the dignitie of the Priest­hood was by a speciall priuiledge to continue in the tribe of Leui. Ver. 14 Now he saith further, that it is euident that Christ sprung out of Iudah, because this was then commōly known: notwithstanding the principall assurance was grounded vpon the promise. Seeing then that they did acknowledge him to be Christ, it was also necessarie that they should be perswaded that he was the sonne of Dauid. For he which was promised could not descend of another tribe.

15 And it is yet a more euident thing, because that after the similitude of Melchisedec, there is risen vp another Priest,

16 Which is not made Priest after the law of the carnall commandement, but after the power of the endlesse life.

17 For he testifieth thus, Psal. 110.1. thou art a Priest for euer after the order of Melchisedec.

18 For the commandement that went afore, is disanulled, [Page 149]because of the weakenesse thereof, and vnprofitablenesse.

19 For the law made nothing perfect but the bringing in of a better hope made perfect, whereby we draw neere vnto God.

20 And for as much as it is not without an oath (for these are made Priests without an oath:

21 But this is made with an oath by him that said vnto him, The Lord hath sworne, and will not repent, Psal. 110.4. thou art a Priest for euer, after the order of Melchisedec.)

22 By so much the more is Iesus made a suretie of a better Testament.

ANd it is yet a more euident thing, &c.] Ver. 15 He prooues by another argument that the law is abolished. He reaso­ned heretofore from the person of the Priesthood: now from the nature of the Priesthood, and from the reason, for which it was instituted. The old Priesthood, saith he, was instituted consisting of outward ceremonies: but in the Priesthood of Christ, there is nothing but that which is Spirituall. It ap­peares then that the old was temporarie and transitorie: but it is manifest that this Priesthood of Christ is perpetuall. The carnall commandement is taken for the bodily ceremo­nies, that is to say, outward. We know with what solemne obseruations both Aaron and his children were ordained Priests. Now that which was fulfilled in Christ by a secret and heauenly power of the holy Ghost, was figured in the institution of Aaron, by oyle, by diuers garmēts, by sprink­ling with blood, and other earthly ceremonies. Now this kind of obseruation in ordaining the Priesthood was agree­able to the nature of that Priesthood. Whereof it followed that euen the Priesthood it selfe was subiect to change. Al­though (as we shall see afterwards) the Priesthood was not so carnal, that it was not also spirituall: But the Apostle hath respect onely to that difference which was between Christ and Aaron. So then howsoeuer the signification of the sha­dowes was spirituall, notwithstanding the shadowes them­selues are rightly tearmed earthly, because they consisted of the elements of this world.

[...] [Page 152]published a long time before Dauid: hee was then in his kingdome when he pronounced this prophecie of the cre­ating of a newe Priest. This is then a new law which disanul­leth the former.

For the lawe made nothing perfect, Ver. 19 &c.] Because he had spo­ken somewhat harshly of the law, he now sweetens this sharpnes, & corrects it, as it were. For he graunts some pro­fit to be in it, that is, that it shewed the way, by which men might come to the end of their saluation. Yet notwithstan­ding euen that was farre off from perfection. Thus the Apo­stle reasons then, The law gaue but an entrance: therefore it was needful that some thing of more perfection should suc­ceed and come after. For the children of God are not al­waies to stay thēselues in the rudiments of children. By this word of bringing in, he meanes that there was somewhat in the law in regard of a preparation, euen as children haue lit­tle beginnings giuen them, to prepare them thereby after­wards to attaine to an higher knowledge: but because the particle Epi whereof the Greeke word is composed, signi­fies a following, when one thing succeedes another; I haue thought good to translate, 1 But is come in, or was added. For in mine opinion he puts two introductions: 2 the first in the figure of Melchisedec: the second in the law, which is last in regard of time. Now by this word law, he meanes the Leuiticall Priesthood, which came in after the Priesthood of Melchisedec. By a better hope he meanes, the state of the faithfull vnder the kingdome of Christ. And withall he hath some respect to those of the Fathers, who not contenting themselues with their present estate, aspired to one further off. And thereof it comes, that Christ said, Many kings and prophets haue desired to see the things which yee see, Luk. 10.24. Wherefore the law as a schoolemaster lead them by the hand, pointing out a further thing vnto them.

By which we drawe neere to God.] Here is a close antithesis between vs and the fathers. For herein we are promoted to a more excellent dignity than they, because God now com­municates himselfe familiarly vnto vs, whereas he only ap­peared [Page 153]to them darkly and a farre off. And this is an alluding to the forme of the Tabernacle, or of the Temple. For the people remained farre off in the court, and none approched neere vnto the Sanctuarie but the Priests: and as touching the inward Sanctuarie, none entred thereinto but the high Priest. But since the Tabernacle is taken away, God doth familiarly manifest himselfe vnto vs: which he did not to the Fathers. He then who yet holds, or any way prefers the shadowes of the law; he not only thereby darkens the glo­rie of Christ, but also depriues vs of a singular benefit: be­cause as much as in him is, he placeth a wall of separation againe betweene God and vs: to the approching towards which bountie and liberalitie the way is now made plaine for vs by the Gospell. Whosoeuer therefore yet sticketh in these ceremonies, hee wittingly depriues himselfe of this great benefit of drawing neere to God.

Was not without an oth.] Vers. 20 This is an argument shewing why the Law is to giue place to the Gospell, to wit, because God preferred the Priesthood of Christ before Aarons: so that for the honour thereof hee was content to confirme it with an oth. For when he ordained the Priests in old time, he vsed no oth: but as touching Christ, it is said, the Lord hath sworn: which doubtles was done to the end his Priesthood should be adorned; and also to shew the excellencie thereof. We see the reason why he alleageth the Psalme once againe: to wit, to the end we should know that in regard of Gods oth, more dignitie is attributed to the Priesthood of Christ, than to any other. Now we are to remember this principle again, that the Priest is created to be a suretie of the couenant. And for this cause the Apostle cōcludes, that the couenant which God made with vs by the hand of Christ, is much more ex­cellent than the old couenant, whereof Moses was the Me­diatour.

23 And among them many were made Priests, because they were not suffered to endure, by reason of death.

24 But this man, because he endureth euer, hath a Priest­hood [Page 144]which cannot passe from one to another.

25 Wherefore he is able perfectly also to saue them that come vnto God by him, seeing he euer liueth, to make intercession for them.

26 For such an high Priest it became vs to haue, which is holy, harmeles, vndefiled, separate from sinners, and made higher than the heauens:

27 Which needeth not daily as those high Priests to offer vp sacrifice, first for his owne sinnes, and then for the peoples: for that he did once, when he offered vp himselfe.

28 For the law maketh men high Priests, which haue infir­mitie: but the word of the oth that was since the law, maketh the sonne who is consecrated for euermore.

ANd amongst them many were made Priests, Ver. 23 &c.] He tou­ched this comparison by the way heretofore: but be­cause the matter required to be further weighed, and better considered of, he now declares it more fully. Although the sense of his disputation is otherwise than before. For here­tofore he gathered that the old Priesthood ought to end, because mortall men were ordained to exercise the same: and now he simply shewes why Christ continues an euerla­sting high Priest. The which he doth by an argument called It is vvhen things are se­parated one from another by a negatiue, as here to dye, and not to dye. A disparatis. The reason why the Priests in old time were many, was, because death put an end to their Priesthood: but there is no death which hinders Christ from exercising his office. He then is the alone and perpetuall high Priest. Thus the diuersitie of the cause makes diuers effects.

Wherefore he is able also perfectly &c.] This is the fruite of the eternall Priesthood, Vers. 25 to wit, our saluation: prouided that we gather this fruite by faith as we ought. For in vaine shall a man seeke saluation where there is either death, or muta­bilitie: and therefore those who rest in the old and ancient Priesthood, shall neuer come to saluation. When he saith, those that come to God, by this he signifies the faithfull, who doe onely enioy the saluation obtained by Christ. In the meane while he shewes what it is that faith ought to behold [Page 155]in Christ the Mediatour. For it is the chiefe happines of man to be knit vnto his God, who is the welspring of life, and of all felicitie: but all of vs are shut out from hauing accesse vnto him by our owne vnworthines. Therefore the proper office of the Mediatour is to succour vs in this regard; to reach vs his hand, to bring vs into heauen. Now he alwaies alludes to the olde shadowes vnder the Law. For although the high Priest had the names of the twelue tribes vpon his shoulders, and that hee bare also the signes thereof conti­nually vpon his heart, Exod. 28.12.29. yet he entred himself alone into the Sanctuarie, whereas the people tarried with­out in the court. But resting now vpon Christ, and hauing him our Mediatour, we enter by faith euen into heauen: No vaile lets vs from ap­proching vnto God now, if we beleeue in Christ. be­cause there is no vaile to hinder vs, but God with open face doth appeare vnto vs, and with an amiable countenance calles vs to come boldly and familiarly vnto him.

Seeing he euer liueth, &c.] Can wee sufficiently esteeme this pledge of Gods loue toward vs, that Christ now liues rather for vs, than for himselfe? He was receiued into eter­nall blessednes, that he might reigne in heauen: but the A­postle preacheth that it was for vs. Wherefore both the life, the kingdome, Christ with all that he hath, is ours. and the glorie of Christ are appointed to our saluation, as to their proper end: and Christ hath nothing which wee may not bee bold to applie to our commo­ditie: because he was once giuen vs of the Father vpon this condition, that all he hath should be made ours. Now the Apostle also immediatly shewes by the effect that Christ performes this office of Priesthood, because the proper of­fice of a Priest is to make intercession for the people, that he might obtaine fauour of God for them. Christ doth this al­waies, because he is risen againe from death for this end. Therefore he iustly attributes vnto him the name of a Priest, because of his office of intercession.

For it became vs to haue such an high Priest, &c.] Vers. 26 He now frames his argument which wee call Ab annexis, that is to say, by things ioyned together. These qualities or condi­tions of being iust, innocent, and without spot, are necessarily [Page 156]required to be in a Priest. Now this honour agrees to none but to Christ. It followes then that that which was required to be in the Priests vnder the Law for the right exercising of their function, was wanting in them. We may therefore conclude that there was no perfection in the Leuiticall Priesthood: and that of it selfe it was vnlawful, further than it was seruiceable vnto Christ, and was a figure or represen­tation of him. For euen the very outward ornaments of the high Priest shewed this imperfection: otherwise to what end serued so rich and costly garments, wherewith God caused Aaron to be adorned when he was to performe the diuine seruice; were they not signes of an angelicall holi­nesse and excellencie, farre exceeding all humane vertues? Now these signes were applied vnto him, because the sub­stance was not present there in effect. It appeares then that there was no other sufficient Priest but Christ.

Separate from sinners.] This member comprehends all the rest. For there was some holines, some innocencie, and puritie in Aaron; but onely in a small measure. For al these vertues were blemished with many spots in him. But Christ which is exempt out of the common order of sinfull men, is onely and alone free from sinne. And therfore there is none other in whom we can finde true holines and perfect inno­cencie. For in that it is said he is separate from vs, it is not, as if he would shut vs out from hauing communion with him: but because this excellencie is proper to him aboue vs, that he is voide of all impuritie. All prayers that depend not vpō Christs intercession are reiected, Question. Now we may gather herehence, that all those prayers which depend not vpon the interces­sion of Christ, are reiected. But a question may be made, whether the Angels also bee separate from sinners. And if they be, what should hinder them from exercising the office of the Priest, or that they should not be our mediatours for vs to God? Answere. The answer is easie: for there is no lawful Priest vnlesse he be ordained of God. Angels no law­full mediators, and vvhy. Now there is no place that shewes where God hath done the Angels this honour. And therefore it should bee an vsurpation full of sacriledge in them, if they should intrude into this office, not being called [Page 157]thereunto. Moreouer (as we shall see in the beginning of the chapter following) he must be a man that must be a Me­diatour between God and man. Although the last conditi­on which the Apostle here recites (to wit, made higher then the heauens) were onely sufficient of it selfe to resolue this questiō. For none can knit vs to god, but hee which attai­neth vnto God. Now this is not giuen to the Angels them­selues: Eph. 4.10. for it is not said of them that they are made higher then the heauens. Wherefore it belongs to none but to Christ to reconcile vs to God, seeing there is none but he that is ascended far aboue all heauens. Now this manner of speech is as much as if he had said, that Christ is exalted aboue all the orders of creatures: so as he is placed aboue the An­gels.

Which needeth not daily, &c. Vers. 27 He followes the antithesis betweene Christ and the Leuiticall Priests, noting two spe­ciall wants in them, whereby it appeares that the old Priest­hood was not fully perfect. In this place he toucheth but the summe briefly: but hereafter he will expound all the particulars at large: but one of the principall defects was, that they daily renued their sacrifices; and indeed this was the chiefe thing in question. For mine own part, I will also shortly, and briefly touch euery point. 1 Was it not a defect that the high Priest was faine to offer sacrifice, first for his owne sinnes? for how could such a one appease God for o­thers, whose wrath and indignation did worthily threaten himselfe? This is one reason then, 2 why the auncient Priests were not sufficient to doe away sinnes. The other defect was, that they euery day offered diuers sacrifices: whereby it appeared that there was no sufficient purgation: because the purgation beeing reiterated, the sinnes and offences re­mained. Now it is otherwise in Christ. For he hath no neede to sacrifice for himselfe, Christs sacri­fice absolutely perfect. because he is not tainted with any spot of sin: & his sacrifice was such, that the only offering of it, is sufficient to the ende of the world: for he offered him­selfe.

For the law maketh men high Priests.] Vers. 28 He gathers by the [Page 158]vices of men, how weake the Priesthood was, as if he should say, seeing the law ordaines not true Priests indeed; it must needs follow of necessitie that this defect must be amended by somewhat else. Now it is corrected by the word of the oath. For Christ is not ordained as a common man, but as he is the sonne of God, not subiect to any infirmitie, but dec­ked and adorned, with an high and soueraigne perfection. He addes further that the oath is after the law, to shewe that God not contenting himselfe with the Priesthood of the law, was minded to ordaine and establish something that should be better. For in the ordinances and statutes of God, that which comes after, turnes the things that were before into a better estate; or els abolisheth vtterly those things which had a place onely for a time.

CHAP. VIII.

1 Now of the things which we haue spoken, this is the summe, that we haue such an high Priest, that sitteth at the right hand of the throne of maiestie in heauens,

2 And is a minister of the Sanctuarie, and of the true Ta­bernacle which the Lord pitcht, and not man.

3 For euery high Priest is ordained to offer both gifts and sacrifices: wherefore it was of necessitie that this man should haue somewhat also to offer.

4 For he were not a Priest, if he were on the earth, seeing there are Priests that according to the law offer gifts:

5 Who serue vnto the patterne and shadow of heauenly things, as Moses was warned by God when he was about to finish the Tabernacle. See said he, that thou make all things according to the patterne shewed thee in the Mount.

6 But now our high Priest hath obtained a more excellent office, in as much as he is the Mediator of a better Testa­ment which is established vpon better promises.

NOw the summe of that we haue spoken, &c] To the ende the readers might know what the matter is, which he now handleth, he shewes it is his intent to proue that the Priesthood of Christ is spirituall, by which the Priesthood of the law was abolished. True it is, that he alwaies holds on his purpose: but because he contends with diuers arguments, he interlaced this admonition, that hee might alwaies keepe the readers attentiue to the ende and scope of his speech. He hath heretofore prooued Christ to be the high Priest: now he striues to prooue further that his Priesthood is heauenly, wherby it follows, that by his com­ming, that which Moses instituted vnder the law is abolish­ed, in regard it was earthly. Now because Christ suffered in the basenesse of the flesh, and by taking vpon himselfe the forme of a seruant, made himselfe of no reputation in the world, Philip. 2.7. The Apostle sends vs to his ascension, by which not only the shame of the crosse was swallowed vp, but also that base and abiect condition which he had by cloathing himselfe with our flesh. For we must esteeme of the dignitie of Christ his Priesthood, by the vertue of the holy Spirit, which was manifested in his resurrection, and ascension. Thus then stands his argument, Seeing Christ is ascended to the right hand of God, to raigne triumphantly in heauen, he is not a minister of the earthly sanctuarie, but of the heauenly.

As touching this word of holy things, or of the sanctuary, the Apostle expounds himselfe when he addes, of the true Tabernacle. But some may aske here, Obiection. whether it was a false Tabernacle which Moses built, or made at randon? For in these wordes there is a close opposition. I answer, that this trueth whereof he speaks, is not opposite to a lie; but to the figures onely: as also when it is said, Ioh. 1.17. The law was giuen by Moses, but grace and truth came by Iesus Christ. Answer. This auncient Tabernacle then was no vaine inuention of man, but the image of the heauenly Tabernacle. Notwith­standing because there is difference betweene the shadow and the bodie; also between the signification, and the thing [...] [Page 162]speakes of the death of Christ, he respects not the outward act so much, as the spiritual fruite that came thereof. He suf­fered death after the common manner of men; Two things to be considered in Christs death. but in that he blotted out sins as a Priest, this was by a diuine power. The shedding of his blood was a thing outward: but the purgation it wrought and yet worketh is a thing inward and spirituall. In a word, hee died on earth, but the power and efficacie of his death reached to heauen. As touching that which followeth, some turne it thus; Of the number of those which offer gifts according to the law, &c. But the words of the Apostle haue another signification: therefore I had rather resolue it thus; Whilst there are, or seeing there are Priests. For his meaning is to prooue one of the two, ei­ther that Christ is not a Priest, if so be the Priesthood of the law remaine, because it is without sacrifice: or rather that the sacrifices of the law doe take an end as soone as Christ shewes himselfe. But the first member is absurd, because it is not lawfull to spoyle Christ of his Priesthood. It remaines then that we confesse the order of the Leuiticall Priesthood to be now abolished.

Who serue vnto the paterne, &c.] I take this word to serue, in this place, Ver. 5 for the performance of the diuine seruice: and therefore this word vnto, must be vnderstood in the Greeke text, or els some other word like vnto it which also we haue put, to wit, in the. Truly this sense agrees better; than as o­thers turne it, Which serue to the paterne, and shadow of heauenly things: and the construction of the Greeke text doth easily beare this sense. To be short, he teacheth that the true seruice of God consists not in the legall ceremonies: and therefore when as the Leuiticall Priests executed their office, they had onely a shadow, and an inferiour pourtrai­ture, which is farre beneath the true and naturall paterne. For indeede the Greeke word which we translate paterne, or samplar, signifies so much. So that he preuents an obiection which might be made to the contrarie. For he shewes yt the seruice of God after the custom of ye fathers, was not vnpro­fitable; because it had an higher significatiō, to wit, heauenly.

As it was answered to Moses when he was to finish the Ta­bernacle.] This place is in Exod. 20.40. And the Apostle alleageth it to proue that the seruice of the law was but as a picture, to shadow forth that which was spirituall in Christ. God commands that all the parts of the Tabernacle should be answerable to the chiefe paterne, which was shewed vn­to Moses in the mountaine. But if so be the forme of the Ta­bernacle had a further end than that which was seene with the eye; as much then is to be said of the ceremonies, and of all the Priesthood. From whence it followes, that there was no stabilitie in any of all these things, but that we must still come vnto that which was shadowed out by them. Be­hold an excellent place, because it containes in it three sen­tences worthie to be noted. 1 For first wee learne by this that the ceremonies of old were not forged by mans braine, nei­ther did God meane to exercise his people therein as in sports fit for little children: the Tabernacle also was not built in vaine, as if it serued to no other purpose but only to draw the eyes of the beholders to gaze vpon the outward magnificence of it, as if they were to stay in that. For the sig­nification of all these things were true and spiritual, because Moses was commanded to frame them all according to the first paterne, which was heauenly. Therefore their opinion is too prophane which say, that the ceremonies were onely commanded to serue as a bridle for staying the inconstan­cie of the people, least they should haue gone to seeke out strange ceremonies among the Gentiles. This indeede is something which they say, but not all. For they leaue out that which is of much more importance: to wit, that they were exercises to hold the people in the faith of the Media­tour. Yet notwithstanding it is not needfull that we should be ouer curious, so as to seeke out some high or profound mysterie in euery pinne, and in euery small piece of the Ta­bernacle, as Hesichius, and the greater part of the ancient authors, who haue trauailed too curiously in this behalfe: for whilest they goe about subtilly to diuine in things to them vnknowne, they haue failed very blockishly, and she­wed [Page 164]themselues ridiculous bablers. So then we must keepe a meane herein: which wee shall doe when wee desire to know no more than that which is reuealed to vs in Christ.

Secondly, 2 we are here taught, that all seruices which men haue forged after their owne minde, and without the com­mandement of God are false and corrupt. For seeing God commands that all things should be framed according to the rule and paterne: it is not lawfull to make any thing els, or contrarie vnto it. For these two manners of speech (See that thou make all things according to the paterne: and, Take heede thou make nothing more than the paterne) are in weight one, VVe must not goe an haires bredth from Gods comman­dement, in things pertai­ning to his wor­ship. as much as the other. Wherefore, in requiring streightly that we keepe the rule which he hath giuen vs, he therewithall forbids vs to turne aside an haires bredth from it. By this meanes all seruices deuised by men fall flat to the ground, and those which some call Sacraments, which not­withstanding were neuer ordained of God.

Thirdly, 3 we may learne from hence that there are no true signes and Sacraments in religion, but those which are re­ferred to Christ. But we are withall to take great heede that whilest we endeuour to appropriate and to make our inuen­tions to agree to Christ, that we doe not transfigure him as the Papists doe, that hee should bee no more like himselfe. For we haue no authoritie to inuent what wee thinke to be good, but it only belongs to God to shew what we ought to doe. For it is said, according to the paterne which he shew­ed thee.

But now our high Priest, Ver. 6 &c.] Euen as heretofore he ga­thered the excellencie of the couenant by the dignitie of the Priesthood, so now also he maintaines, that the Priest­hood of Christ is more excellent; because he is the Media­tour and Ambassadour of a better couenant. Both the one and the other were necessarie, because it was needfull that the Iewes should be turned from the superstitious obserua­tion of ceremonies, which were so many impediments to hinder them from going directly to the pure and simple truth of the Gospell. Now the Apostle saith that it was rea­son [Page 165]that both Moses and Aaron should giue place to Christ, as to the more excellent: because the Gospel is a more ex­cellent couenant than the law, and the death of Christ much more noble than the sacrifices of the law. But that which he addes is not without some difficultie; to wit, Obiection. that the coue­nant of the Gospel was established vpon better promises. For it is certaine, that euen the very same hope of eternall life which we now haue, was set before the auncient Fathers which liued vnder the law. The grace of adoption beeing as common to them as to vs. Their faith then must needs be built vpon the same promises. Answere. But this comparison of the Apostle must be rather referred to the forme than to the matter. For although God did promise them the same sal­uation, which he promiseth vs now at this day, yet notwith­standing the measure, or manner of reuelation was neither equall, nor alike. But if any wil see more of this, let him haue recourse to our Institution, and to that which is written vp­on the fourth and fith chapter of the Epistle to the Gala­thians.

7 For if that first Testament had been vnblameable, no place should haue beene sought for the second.

8 For in rebuking them he saith, Behold the daies will come, Ier. 32.31, 32, 33, 34. Rom. 11.27. Chap. 10.16. saith the Lord, when I shall make with the house of Israel, and with the house of Iudah a new Testament.

9 Not like the Testament that I made with their fathers, in the day that I tooke them by the hand, to lead them out of the land of Egypt: for they continued not in my Testament, and I re­garded them not, saith the Lord.

10 For this is the Testament that I will make with the house of Israel, After those daies saith the Lord, I will put my lawes in their minde, and in their heart I will write them, and I will bee their God and they shall be my people.

11 And they shall not teach euery man his neighbour, and euery man his brother saying, Know the Lord, for all shall know me, from the least of them to the greatest of them.

12 And I will be mercifull vnto their vnrighteousnesse, [Page 166]and I will remember their sinnes and their iniquities no more. The 12. verse is expounded af­ter verse 10.

13 In that he saith a new Testament, he hath abrogated the old: now that which is disanulled and waxed old, is readie to va­nish away.

FOr if the first Testament, Vers. 7 &c.] He confirmes that which he said touching the excellencie of the couenant which god hath made with vs by the hand of Christ. Now his con­firmation stands vpon this, that the couenant or testament of the law was not stable. For if it had beene perfect, what neede had there beene that another should be put in the place thereof? Obiection. But we see that there is another. It appeares then, that this auncient couenant was not perfect in all points. Now to prooue this he alleadgeth the testimonie of Ieremiah, the which we will intreat of by and by. But it may seeme that this agrees not very well, that he should affirme that there had bin no necessitie to seek a place for a second couenant, if so be the first had beene vnblameable: and that he addes withall, that the people are reprooued, so as for their default a remedie was giuen by the new couenant. And is it not a wicked thing to affirme, that for the sinne of the people, the fault should therefore be cast vpon the coue­nant of God? It seemes then that the argument is vnfound. For although God should condemne the people an hun­dred times, yet are we not to conclude that the couenant should therefore be faultie. Answere. But this obiection is easily an­swered. For although the fault of breaking the couenant be iustly imputed to the people, who by their disloyaltie tur­ned away from the Lord: yet notwithstanding the weaknes of this couenant by this meanes is therewithall touched: to wit, because it was not written in their hearts. Wherfore god protesteth that the heart must be corrected, before it can be holy, and confirmed. The Apostle therefore hath iust cause to affirme, that a new couenant was to be established.

Behold the daies come, Vers. 8 &c.] The Prophet speakes of the time to come. He reprooues the people for their disloyalty, that hauing receiued the law, they did not perseuere in the [Page 167]faith. The law then is this couenant which God complaines the people brake. And to remedie this euill, he promiseth a newe couenant; not like the first: the fulfilling of which pro­phecie imports the abolishing of the old Testament. But it seemes the Apostle doth misalleage this prophecie to make it serue his purpose. Obiection. For here the question is about the abro­gation of ceremonies; and the Prophet speaks of the whole lawe. For let it be granted that God doth write the rule of holines of life in the hearts, which yet is giuen by the voice of men, and by them put into writing, what is all this to the purpose in regard of ceremonies? I answer, Answere. it is an argu­ment from the whole to a part. For we are not to doubt but the Prophet comprehends the whole ministrie of Moses, when he saith, I haue made a couenant with you, which couenant you brake. The law indeed was clothed as it were, with ceremonies: but now the bodie being destroyed and dead, what vse is there of the garments? for it is a common prouer be well enough knowne, that the appurtenance or accessarie is of the nature of his principall. It is no maruell then, if the ceremonies which are but hangbies (as you would say) of the old testament, with the whole ministrie of Moses be abolished. And it is alwaies the vsuall custome of the Apostles, when they contend about ceremonies, to dispute generally of the whole law. So then, although this prophesie of Ieremiah stretcheth it selfe further than to the ceremonies, yet notwithstanding because they are included vnder the name of the old Testament, the Apostle fitly ap­plies this prophesie to his present purpose. Moreouer, all doe confesse, that by the daies whereof the Prophet makes mention, is signified the kingdome of Christ. He names the house of Israel, and the house of Iudah, because the posteritie of Abraham was deuided into two kingdomes: therefore it is a promise that the whole bodie of all the elect shall be gathered againe together in one: howsoeuer in times past they were seuered.

Not according to the couenant which I made, &c.] Vers. 9 Hereby he shewes that there should be a difference betweene that [Page 168]couenant which then was in force, and the newe couenant the which he gaue them hope of. Otherwise the prophet would haue said, I will renue and establish againe with you, the couenant which was broken by your default: but he now saith expresly, that it shall not be like vnto it. Whereas he saith, that the Couenant was made in that day when he tooke them by the hand to bring them out of bondage: he aggra­uates the crime of their reuolt, by the repetition of so great a benefit: although hee condemnes not the ingratitude of one generation onely: but, as those which were deliuered, reuolted by and by, and their successours likewise fell often into the same fault after thē: so he doth in this speech chal­lenge the whole nation of disloyaltie, and of breaking the couenant. When he saith he despised them, or regarded them not, he giues them to vnderstand, that although they were once adopted to be his people, yet that should profit them nothing, vnlesse hee succour them by a new remedie. The prophet hath other tearmes, according as the matter is cou­ched together in the Hebrewe text: but that is of no great importance as touching the point now in question.

For this is the couenant, Vers. 10 &c.] There are two principall ar­ticles in this couenant. The first is touching the free remissi­on of sinnes: the second of the inward reformation of the hearts: there is a third, but that depends vpon the second: & that is the illumination of the minde with the knoweledge of God. Now there are here many things worthy our ob­seruation. 1 The first is, that God calles vs to him in vaine, whilest he onely speaketh vnto vs by the voice of man. We must not denie, but that which he teacheth is right and iust: but yet he speakes but to deafe eares; yea and albeit it may seeme that we vnderstand somewhat, yet is it onely an outward sound that beates the aire: for the heart still re­maines full of rebellion and frowardnesse, casting off the yoke of wholesome doctrine. In a word, Gods word neuer entreth into the secret of the hearts, beeing of themselues more hard than iron or stones, till he by his his Spirit doe soften them: not onely that, but the case is yet farre other­wise, [Page 169]for we haue a contrarie law, ingrauen within them, Gods word ne­uer takes place in our hearts, till he hath softened them by his spirit. in such wise that multitudes of froward and wicked affections doe raigne therein, which doe daiely prouoke vs to rebel­lion. In vaine it is then that God doth publish his law vnto vs by the voice of man, if withall he doe not write it in our hearts by his holy Spirit: that is, vnlesse he frame vs and turne vs to his obedience. Now by this it appeares what free will is, and what vprightnesse there is in our nature, before God haue regenerated vs. I graunt that we both will, and choose, and that freely, without constraint: Freevvill. but our will is carried away euen with a furious violence to resist God, and is not able in any thing to subiect it selfe to his righteous­nesse. This is the cause why the law brings nothing but de­struction and death with it, whilest it remaines written in tables of stone: as S. Paul teacheth, 2. Cor. 3.3. To be short; then doe we receiue that which God commands with obe­dient hearts, when he changeth and corrects the naturall peruersitie of them by the worke of his Spirit: otherwise he shall finde in vs nothing but corrupt affections, and a heart wholy inclined to euill. For this sentence of God is cleare and euident, that a new couenant must be made, by which God ingraues his lawes in our hearts, because otherwise it shall be altogether fruitlesse and vnprofitable vnto vs.

The second article is as touching the free remission of sins. 2 Although they haue sinned, saith the Lord, The 12. verse is expounded here. There remaine vvicked and corrupt affec­t ons euen in the best after regeneration: and therefore the Prophet had good cause to adde this se­cond article. yet will I not­withstanding pardon their sinnes. This also is a very neces­sarie article. For God neuer so frames and fashions vs in o­bedience to his righteousnesse, but there still remaines in vs many wicked and corrupt affections of the flesh: yea and the corruption of our nature is regenerate but onely in part: for euery hand-while we feele wicked lusts, and naughtie af­fections to boyle in vs. And from thence issueth that com­bate where of S. Paul complaines, Rom. 7.23. where he testi­fies of himselfe, in the person of all the faithfull, that he saw another law in his members, rebelling against the law of his minde, so that he obeyed not God as he ought to haue done, but failed therein many waies. What good or holy [Page 170]desire then soeuer it be which wee haue to liue religiously, yet we shall be alwaies guiltie before God of eternal death, because our conuersation is alwaies farre off from the per­fection of the law. There is no stabilitie in the couenant then in regard of vs, vnlesse God doe freely forgiue vs our sinnes. But this is a speciall priuiledge belonging onely to the faithfull, who haue imbraced the couenant offered them in Christ: that is to say, to bee assured that God fauoureth them, and that the sinnes to which they are subiect hurts them not, Note. because they haue a promise of pardon. Neither is this promised them for a day only, but euen to the end of their life: so that their reconciliation with God worketh and hath his efficacie continually. For this grace extends it self throughout ye whole kingdom of Christ: which S. Paul also doth sufficiently shew 2. Our citie of refuge is the remission of sins in Christs blood. Cor. 5. And indeed this is the citie of our refuge, vnto which if wee flee not by faith, it is vnpossible but wee shall be plunged into continuall despe­ration. For all of vs are fast locked vnder condemnation, and can no otherwise be loosed, but by running to the mercie of God, whereby we are absolued.

And they shall be my people.] This is the fruite of the coue­nant, to wit, that God takes vs for his people, and testifies that he will be the protector of our saluation. For this man­ner of speech, and I will be their God, imports so much. For he is not the God of the dead, neither receiues he vs vnder his safegard, but to make vs partakers of his righteousnes, and of life: Psal. 33.12. Psal. 144.15. for Dauid crieth excellently in the Psalmes; Blessed are the people who haue the Lord for their God. Now wee neede not doubt but this doctrine belongs euen to vs also. For although the Israelites occupied the first place, and were the right and lawfull heires of the couenant: yet their pre­rogatiue hinders not vs to haue our portion in it. So that the wider and larger the kingdome of Christ spreads, so far hath this couenant of saluation his efficacie. But some may aske whether there were no certaintie nor efficacie of the pro­mise vnder the law: Question. that is, whether the ancient Fathers were depriued of the grace of the holy Ghost, and whether [Page 171]they tasted not of Gods fatherly kindnes in the remission of their sinnes? 1 For it well appeares that they serued God in sinceritie of heart, and in purity of conscience, and that they walked in his commandements: which surely they could not haue done, vnlesse the Spirit of God had taught them inwardly. 2 It also appeares that as oft as they thought vpon their sinnes, they were comforted, and sustained by the hope and confidence which they had in the free remission of them. Obiection. But (may some say) it seemes that the Apostle ex­cludes them from hauing part in any of these benefits: in putting ouer the prophecie of Ieremy to the comming of Christ. I answere, Answere. he simply denies not that God wrote his law in the hearts of those which were his, euen vnder the law, or that hee did not pardon them their sinnes: but hee speakes by a comparison from the greater to the lesse. Ther­fore for as much as the heauenly Father hath more abun­dantly manifested his power vnder the kingdome of Christ, and hath shed abroad his mercie and grace vpon men: this his so exceeding liberalitie is the cause that the little por­tion of grace (in comparison) which was shewed to the Fa­thers vnder the law, comes not into account. Wee see also how darke and intricate the promises then were: so as they onely gaue them some darke glimpse of light, much like the light of the Moone and starres, in comparison of that light of the Gospell, which now shewes it selfe with a sur­passing cleerenes. Obiection. If it bee obiected that the faith and obe­dience of Abraham was so excellent that the like is not to be found at this day in all the world: I answer, Answere. that the que­stion is not here of mens persons, but of the order and dis­pensation of gouerning the Church. Moreouer, that what­soeuer spirituall gifts the Fathers had, was as a thing acci­dentall to their time. It is not from the purpose then that the Apostle comparing the Law and the Gospell together, takes that from the Law which is proper to the Gospell: and yet this hinders not that God should not make the old fathers partakers of the new couenant. This is the true so­lution.

[...] [Page 176]Sanctuarie. 3 The third, the inmost Sanctuarie, which was cal­led by way of excellencie the most holy place, or the holie of holies. For the first Sanctuarie, which ioyned to the court of the people, he saith there was the candlestick and the table, whereupon the shew bread was set. But he calles this place in the plurall number, the holy places. There was then that se­cret place which was called the holiest of all, Vers. 3 which was further oft the people, and euen farre off from the Priests also, who were in the first Tabernacle to performe the seruices thereof. For although the first Sanctuary was close and separate from the court of the people, by reason of the vaile which was put betweene them: yet was there a second vaile betweene the Priests and that which was called the most holie place. The Apostle saith that therein was the Golden censor, or ra­ther, Ver. 4 the altar of incense, or perfume: for I had rather take the Greeke word so. Then, the Arke of the couenant ouerlaid with gold: the two Cherubims, the golden pot filled with Man­na, Aarons Rod, and the two Tables. Hitherto the Apostle followeth the description of the Tabernacle. Now where he saith, that the pot into which Moses had put the Manna, and that Aarons rodde which budded, was in the Arke, with the two Tables: this may seeme to contradict the holy hi­storie, Obiection. which recites no more to be in the Arke but the two Tables, 1. King. 8.9. But it is easie to reconcile these two places together. Answere. God had commaunded that the pot, and Aarons rod should be put before the Testimonie; where­fore it is probable that they were enclosed in the Arke with the two Tables: but when the Temple was builded, euery one of these things was placed by order. And indeede the holy historie recites this as a new thing, to wit, that there was nothing in the Arke but the two Tables.

Of which things wee will not now speake particularly.] Vers 5 Be­cause nothing can satisfie curious heads, the Apostle cuts off occasion of falling into those subtilties, which fitted not with the matter in hand, least by too large a recitall of these things, he should breake off the chiefe matter in question. Therefore if there be any who laying aside this admonition [Page 177]of the Apostle, shall herein curiously stay himselfe; such a one shall doe it without ground. I confesse indeede that it may so fall out, for some respect, that this long repetition may haue place: but for the present, it is better to bethinke vs of the matter which hee handleth. Now to descant be­yond measure, as some doe, is not onely vnprofitable, but also dangerous. Some things there are here which are not obscure, which also are fit for the edification of our faith: but we had need to vse discretion in our choise therein, and to keepe a modest and sober course, to the end we desire not to know more than that which it hath pleased the Lord to reueale vnto vs.

6 Now when these things were thus ordained, the Priests went alwaies into the first Tabernacle, and accomplished the ser­uice.

7 But into the second went the high Priest alone once euery yeere, not without blood, which he offered for himselfe, and for the ignorances of the people.

8 Whereby the holy Ghost this signified, that the way into the holiest of all was not yet opened, while as yet the first Tabernacle was standing.

9 Which was a figure for that present time, wherein were of­fered gifts and sacrifices that could not make holy, concerning the conscience, him that did the seruice.

10 Which only stood in meates and drinks, and diuers wash­ings, and carnall rites, which were inioyned, vntill the time of re­formation.

11 But Christ being come an high Priest of good things to come, by a greater, and more perfect Tabernacle not made with hands, that is, not of this building,

12 Neither by the blood of goates and calues: but by his owne blood entred he in once vnto the holy place, and obtained eternall redemption for vs.

NOw these things thus ordained, &c.] Verse 6 Omitting all other matters, he vndertakes to deale with that wherein was [Page 178]most difficultie. He saith that the Priests which performed the seruices about the sacrifices, were alwaies accustomed to enter into the first Tabernacle: but the high Priest entred only once euery yeere with a solemne sacrifice into the ho­liest place of all. And of this he gathereth, that whilest this Tabernacle of the law was standing, the Sanctuarie was yet closed vp, and the way was no otherwise opened into the kingdome of God, but by the ouerthrowing of this first Ta­bernacle. We see then how that euen the figure of the olde tabernacle did admonish the Iewes that they were to aspire further. Those then who wittingly doe shut vp the passage, by retaining the shadowes of the law still, doe very foolish­ly. Therefore to this purpose, in the 8. verse, he takes the first Tabernacle in another sense than heretofore. For in the sixt verse, it signified the common Sanctuarie; but here it signi­fies the whole bodie of the Tabernacle. For it is set as oppo­site to the Sanctuarie of Christ, whereof hee will speake by and by. He saith that the taking downe thereof was to our great profit, because that by the ruine of it, accesse is giuen vs to come the more familiarly to God.

For himselfe.] Vers. 7 Although the word SAGAG among the He­brues signifies to erre, and that from thence they deriue this this word Sagaga, which properly signifies error: yet not­withstanding it is taken generally for all kinde of sinne. For indeede, we neuer sinne but wee are deceiued by the intise­ments of Sathan. True it is that the Apostle meanes not a simple ignorance (as they call it) but vnder this word he al­so comprehends voluntarie sinnes. But, as I haue said, there is neuer any sinne committed without error or ignorance. For although a man doe sinne wittingly and willingly, yet notwithstanding he must be blinded by his lust, so as he is vnable to iudge rightly, euen forgetting himselfe, and God likewise. For men neuer runne vpon their owne ruine wil­lingly, vnles being first inwrapped by the fallacies and be­withchings of Satan, they erre from a right iudgement.

Which was a similitude.] Verse 9 The Greeke word in mine opi­nion signifies as much as if hee had said, A second paterne [Page 179]made according to the first. For his meaning is that this Ta­bernacle was a second portraiture answerable to the for­mer. For the picture of a man ought so to be compared with the man himselfe, that when wee see the picture, our mindes may by and by conceiue the personage of him that is represented thereby. Moreouer he saith, that it was a signe for the present time: to wit, whilest the outward obseruation stood in force: to the end hee might restraine the continu­ance and vse thereof to the time of the Law. For it agreeth with that which he addes immediatly, to wit, that all the ce­remonies were ordained till the time of reformation. Nei­ther is the verbe of the present tence which he vseth repug­nant hereunto, when he saith, in the which sacrifices are offe­red. For in that he hath to doe with the Iewes, he speakes by way of yeelding, or granting; as if he were of the number of them that offered sacrifices. As concerning these words, gifts and sacrifices, there is the same difference that is be­tweene the generall, and the speciall.

Sanctifie as touching the conscience.] That is to say, which doe not pearce vnto the soule, to giue true sanctification vnto it. In stead of the word to sanctifie, others translate to consummate or finish: which I reiect not: notwithstanding me thinkes to sanctifie, seemes more fitting to the scope of the text. Now to the end the readers may the better vnder­stand what the Apostles meaning is, we must note the Anti­thesis that is betweene the flesh and the conscience. He saith that those who offered sacrifices vnder the Law, could not be washed by them spiritually, or inwardly within the con­science. His reason is added, because al the ceremonies were carnall. What leaues he now more vnto them? Vers. 10 Some indeed doe commonly vnderstand this, as if the Apostle should say, that this washing was a profitable schoolmaster among men, seruing them for honestie: but those which are of this opinion, do not weigh the promises, which are added here­unto as they deserue. And therefore it is a fancie which ought vtterly to be reiected. Also they doe ill expound the Iustifications of the flesh, saying, that they are so called, be­cause [Page 180]they onely purge, or sanctifie the bodie, seeing the A­postle thereby meanes, that these earthly figures reach not vnto the soule. For although such figures were true testimo­nies of perfect holinesse, yet had they not this holinesse in them, neither could they giue it vnto men. For it was need­full that the faithfull should bee brought to Christ by such helpes, to the end they might seeke that in him which was wanting in the figures. Question. If it bee demaunded wherefore the Apostle speakes so meanly, and as it were in contempt of the Sacraments ordained of God, in thus lessening of their vertue? Answere. I answere, he doth it because he separates them from Christ: for we know that when we esteeme them by them­selues, they are but weake elements of the world, as S. Paul calles them, Gal. 4.9. Whereas he saith, vntill the time of re­formation, he alludes to the prophecie of Ierem. 31.37. for the new couenant succeeded the old, as a reformation of it. He doth purposely name, meates and drinkes, and such other things which were of no great importance: because men might the more certainly iudge by these small and light ob­seruations, how farre off the Law was from the perfection of the Gospell.

But Christ being come an high Priest, Vers. 11 &c.] Now he brings foorth the truth of the things which were vnder the law, to the end that turning away their eyes from the figures, they might looke vnto Christ in whom the substance was to bee found. For he which beleeues that all that which was then shadowed out, was truly manifested in Christ; will no lon­ger entangle his minde about shadowes, but will embrace the truth and the very bodie it selfe. Now we must diligent­ly note the parts wherein he compares Christ, with the high Priest who was in old time vnder the Law. 1 He said that the high Priest onely, entred euery yeere once into the Sanctua­rie with blood for the purgation of sinnes. Christ hath this in common with him, that he onely is put into the dignitie and office of the high Priest. But yet there is a difference, that Christ is come vpon this, and hath brought with him eternall benefits, which causeth that his Priesthood is per­petuall. [Page 183] 2 Secondly, the ancient Priest, & ours who is Christ, had this in common, that both of them entred into the Ho­liest of all by the Sanctuarie: but in this they differ, that Christ onely is entred into heauen, by the temple of his bo­die. 3 Whereas the most holy place was open to the high Priest onely once a yeere, to make the purgation of sinnes, this did alreadie somewhat darkly represent the onely ob­lation of Christ. This once then is common to them both: but to the earthly Priest it was yeerely: and to the heauenly Priest eternally vntil the consummation of ye world. The of­fring of blood is cōmon to thē both: 4 but there is great dif­ference in the blood: because Christ offred not vp the blood of beasts, but his owne blood. 5 Satisfaction was common to them both, but the satisfaction of the law was reiterated e­uery yeere, because it was without efficacie: contrariwise, the satisfaction made by Christ, hath his efficacie alwaies, and is the cause of eternall saluation. Thus there is scarcely a word which hath not his weight. Whereas others haue turned it, Christ an high Priest present, &c. do not rightly ex­presse the Apostles meaning. For he signifies that the Leui­ticall Priests hauing performed their office vnto the time appointed for them, Christ was put into their place, as wee haue seene chap. 7.

By this clause, of good things to come, are signified eternall good things. For as in this place the time to come is oppo­sed to the time present, so also are the good things to come, to those present. The summe is, that wee are brought into the kingdome of heauen by the Priesthood of Christ, and are in such wise made partakers of spirituall righteousnesse, and of eternall life, that it is vnlawfull for vs to desire any better things. Christ therfore hath wherewithall for to hold vs and satisfie vs in himselfe. By a greater and more perfect Tabernacle, &c. Although some expound this place d [...]ers waies, yet I doubt not but the Apostle vnderstands it of the bodie of Christ. For as the Leuiticall Priests in former time entred into the most holy place by the commō Sanctuarie, so Christ is entred into the heauenly glorie by his bodie: because [Page 184] ordained to bring men to Christ: (the eternall saluation of the soule onely depending on him) so the sacrifices were true testimonies of this saluation. What meanes the Apostle then, when hee mentioneth the purification of the flesh? Surely he speakes of the figuratiue or sacramentall purga­tion, in this sense; If the blood of beasts were a true witnes of purgation, The blood of beasts purified sacramentally: but Christs blood doth it really. so as it sanctified, and did purifie sacramental­ly: how much more shall Christ himselfe who is the truth, I say not beare witnes of purgation by outward ceremonie, but shall indeede giue it to the consciences? And therefore it is an argument from the signes to the thing signified: be­cause the effect of the thing farre excelleth the truth of the signes.

Who by the eternall Spirit, Ver. 14 &c.] Now he shewes very plain­ly, from whence the death of Christ takes his dignitie, to wit, from the vertue of the Spirit, and not from the outward act. 1 For Christ indeed suffered as hee was man: but this his death is healthfull for vs, by reason of the efficacie which came from the Spirit. For the sacrifice of our eternall purga­tion was more than a humane worke. 2 And for this cause he calleth the eternall Spirit, to the end wee might know, that the reconciliation which he made was eternall. When hee saith without spot, although he alludes to the sacrifices of the law, where the beasts that were sacrificed ought to bee free from imperfection or fault: yet notwithstanding his mea­ning is that Christ onely is the proper and lawfull sacrifice to appease God. For some fault might alwaies be found in the others. And for that cause he said before that the coue­nant of the law was not so perfect, but some fault was to be found therewith. Christs sacrifice absolutely per­fect in al points But this perfection which is in Christ, hath nothing in it which is not full in all points.

By dead workes, he vnderstands those works which beget death, or which are fruites of death. For euen as the life of the soule consists in the coniunction that wee haue with God; so those who are estranged from him by sinne, are ve­ry rightly esteemed dead. Now wee are to note the end of this purgation: to wit, that we should serue the liuing God. [Page 185]For although we be washed by Christ, Nothing vve doe is accep­table in Gods sight, till we be purged by the blood of Christ. yet it is not that wee should by and by goe wallow our selues afresh in our dung: but that our puritie might serue to the glorie of God. Moreouer, the Apostle hereby teacheth vs, that nothing proceedeth from vs which can be acceptable vnto God, till we be purged by the blood of Christ. For seeing wee are all of vs enemies of God, before wee be reconciled, he must in his iustice hate all our workes. The beginning therefore of the true and lawfull seruice of God, is reconciliation. Fur­thermore, seeing there is no work of ours so pure and cleane without spot, that of it selfe can bee acceptable and well pleasing vnto God: therefore it is necessarie that the blood of Christ should come betweene to wash away all the spots that are in them. Thus wee must note the seemly antithesis which he makes betweene the liuing God; and dead workes.

And therefore he is the Mediatour of the new Testament, Ver. 15 &c.] He concludes that we are not now to looke for any o­ther Priest, because Christ fully and absolutely performes this office vnder the new Testament. For he attributes not this honour of the Mediatourship to Christ, to the end that others should ioyne with him in that office: but hee con­tends, and with forcible arguments maintaines, that all o­thers were deposed, when the office was once giuen to Christ. But to confirme this more fully, he also recites how Christ obtained this office of a Mediatour: to wit, through death, which was for the transgression. If this be found in Christ alone, and is not to be found in any other, it followes that he is the true and onely Mediatour. He also toucheth the vertue & efficacie of his death, when he saith yt the price was paid for sinnes, which could not be purged by the blood of beasts vnder the former Testament. By which words hee would haue the Iewes to passe from the law to Iesus Christ. For if the weaknes of the law is so great, that all the reme­dies which it giueth to wash away sinnes, doe not accom­plish that which they signifie: what is hee that would rest himselfe in them, as in a sure hauen? This onely point, I say, ought to be a sufficient spurre vnto them to desire a refor­mation [Page 186]of the law: because whilest they rest still in that, it cannot be auoided but they must fal into a perpetual anxie­tie of conscience. They must needs be in perpetuall an­guish of con­science, that rest only in the do [...]trine of the lavv. Contrariwise, when we are once come to Christ, nothing remaines that may torment vs, because in him we finde and obtaine ful and perfect redemption. Thus then by these words hee shewes the weaknes of the law, to the end the Iewes should no longer rest in it: and withall teacheth them to keepe themselues close to Christ, because in him is to bee found whatsoeuer can bee desired to quiet their consciences. Question. Now if any aske whether the sinnes of the Fathers were pardoned or no vnder the law? that solution which I gaue erewhile must be held: to wit, that they were pardoned, Answere. but alwaies by the meanes of Christ: It followes then that they were stil held vnder the bondage of condem­nation, notwithstanding all the outward purgations the law could affoord them. For this cause S. Paul saith, that the law was an ordinance that was against vs. For when the sinner presented himselfe, and did publikely confesse that hee was indebted to God, and in offring of an innocent beast did ac­knowledge himselfe worthie of eternall death: what gained he by his sacrifice, vnlesse wee might peraduenture say that he sealed to his owne death by this obligation? In a word, they had no better meanes to assure them of the remission of their sinnes, than in looking vnto Christ. Now if the only beholding of Christ did wash away their sinnes, they could neuer be deliuered from them, if they should still haue rested in the law. True it is that Dauid saith, Psal. 32.1. Blessed is the man to whom the Lord imputeth not sinne: but to at­taine the ioyfull tidings of this blessednes, it was necessarie for him to turne his eyes from the law, and to fasten them vpon Christ. For he shall neuer be deliuered from condem­nation, that abideth in the law.

They which were called receiued the promise, &c.] The coue­nant which God hath made with vs tends to this end, that wee being adopted of him for his children, are at the last made inheritors of eternall life. The Apostle shewes that we obtaine so great a benefit by the meanes of Christ: from [Page 187]whence it appeares that the accomplishment of this his co­uenant is in him. As touching the promise of the eternall inhe­ritance, he takes it for the heritage promised: as if he should haue said, The promise of eternall life hath no otherwise had his effect towards vs for our enioying of it, but by the death of Christ. It is very sure that life was promised in old time to the Fathers, and the same which is now at this day, was from the beginning the heritage of the children of God: but wee enter not into the possession of it, vnlesse the blood of Christ doe goe before. He makes expresse mention of those which are called: to the end hee might moue the Iewes with the greater care, who were partakers of this vo­cation. For it is a speciall fauour of God when the know­ledge of Christ is giuen vs: and therefore so much the more ought wee to take heede, that in despising so inestimable a treasure, our spirits doe not wander elsewhere. Some take this word called here, for elected: but vnfitly, as I thinke. For the Apostle teacheth here the very same thing that S. Paul doth Rom. 3.25. to wit, that righteousnes and saluation was obtained for vs by the blood of Christ, but we receiue it by faith.

For where a Testament is, &c.] Ver. 16 Were there but this one place, yet were it sufficient to shew that this Epistle was not written in Hebrue: for Berith, in the Hebrue tongue, signi­fies Couenant, and not Testament. But because the Greeke word Diathece, hath these two significations, to wit, of the Couenant, and of the Testament: for this cause the Apostle alluding to the second signification, affirmeth that the pro­mises could not otherwise bee of any weight or stabilitie, vnlesse they had been sealed by the death of Christ. Which he proues by the common right of Testaments: the effect of which is deferred till the death of the Testator. Although it may yet seeme that the Apostle grounds his speech vpon too weake a reason: so as that which he saith may easily be refuted. For God made no Testament vnder the law, but made a Couenant with the ancient people. And thus the A­postle could not gather from the thing it selfe, neither yet [Page 188]from the name, that the death of Christ was necessarie. For if he would inferre by the matter it selfe, that it was needful Christ should die, because the Testament is not ratified, till the death of the Testator come betweene: some might pre­sently reply, that Berith (which word Moses vseth here and there to this purpose) is a Couenant made betweene the li­uing: so as wee cannot thinke otherwise of the matter. As touching the name, hee simply alludes, as I haue said, to the signification of the Greeke word Diathece, which hath two significations: and therefore hee chiefly insists vpon the thing. Neither is this repugnant to that which some might say, that it was a couenant which God made with his peo­ple. For this couenant was like a Testament, because it was established, and confirmed by blood. This principle then must be retained, that God neuer vsed signes at randon, nor without cause. Now so it is that God in confirming of the Couenant intermingled blood therewithall. It follows then that it was not a contract betweene the liuing (as they say) but such a contract as required death to come betweene. For a Testament hath this condition proper vnto it, that it begins to take effect after death. If we then consider that the Apostle contēds rather about the substance, than the name: moreouer if we come to weigh with our selues that he takes that (which I haue said) for a thing without controuersie, to wit, that God hath ordained nothing idly or in vaine; there will be no great difficultie. Obiection. If it be obiected, that the Gen­tiles in making their couenants haue vsed sacrifices to ano­ther end: Answere. I answere, it is true: but God did not borrow the vse of sacrifices from their customes, but the Gentiles rather tooke the beginning of all their corrupt and bastardly sa­crifices from the ordinances of God. Wherefore wee must alwaies returne to this point, that the couenant of God which was confirmed with blood, is fitly compared to a Te­stament, because it was of the same nature and condition.

18 Wherefore neither was the first ordained without blood.

19 For when Moses had spoken euery precept to the people [Page 189]according to the law, he tooke the blood of calues, and of goates, with water and purple wooll and hysope, and sprinkled both the booke and all the people,

20 Saying, This is the blood of the Testament, Exod. 24.8. which God hath appointed vnto you.

21 Moreouer, he sprinkled likewise the Tabernacle with blood also, and all the ministring vessels.

22 And almost all things are by the law purged with blood, and without the shedding of blood there is no remission.

23 It was then necessarie, that the similitudes of heauenly things should be purified with such things: but the heauenly things themselues are purified with better sacrifices than those.

WHerefore also &c.] Vers. 18 By this it appeares that hee in­sists chiefly vpon the substance, rather than simply grounding his speech vpon the name: although the Apostle hath turned the word which the language affoorded him wherein he wrote, to his profit. As if some speaking also of the couenant of God (which the Greekes often call Mar­tyria, that is to say, witnesse) to praise and extoll the same; amongst other commendations should vse these words; Surely this Couenant must needes rightly be called Testi­monie, to which the heauenly Angels gaue testimonie from aboue; to the which there were also so many credible wit­nesses here on earth, to wit, all the holy Prophets, Apostles, and so infinite a companie of Martyrs: yea to the sealing wherof euen the Sonne of God was giuen as a witnes there­of in his owne person: if one should speake on this man­ner, no man would say there were any absurditie in it. And yet notwithstanding the proprietie of the Hebrue word Theuda, doth not expressely conclude this: but because no­thing is said herein which agrees not very well to the mat­ter, no wise man will stand to descant too curiously about the word. Thus then the Apostle affirmes that the old Te­stament was dedicated with blood. From whence he gathers that men were thereby admonished, it could not be other­wise [Page 190]stable and effectuall vnlesse death came in betweene. For he denies that the blood of beasts which was then shed, was able to ratifie an eternall couenant. And that this may be the better vnderstood, the manner of sprinkling which Moses here recites is to be noted. 1 First he teacheth that this Couenant was dedicated, not as though it had any propha­nes in it selfe, but because there is nothing so holy which men prophane not by their vncleannes, if God himselfe should not preuent and remedie the same by renuing all things. This consecration then was made in respect of men, who onely stand in neede of it.

He afterwards addes, Vers. 19 that the Tabernacle, with all the ves­sels, VVe can nei­ther seeke, nor serue the true God, till faith apprehend the blood of Christ. yea and the booke it selfe also was sprinkled with blood: by which ceremonie the people were aduertised that it was im­possible either to seeke God, or to behold him vnto salua­tion, or to serue him duly, vnlesse faith had alwaies an eye to the blood that came betweene. For first of al we must needs graunt that the maiestie of God is feareful, 1 and the way thi­ther is nothing els but a deadly labyrinth, till such time as wee know that hee is pacified towards vs by the blood of Christ: and that by the same blood we may haue our accesse thereunto. 2 On the other side also all seruices are saultie and vncleane, vnlesse Christ wash and clense them by the sprink­ling of his blood. For the Tabernacle was as it were a visible image of God: and the ministring vessels, as they were or­dained to serue God withall, so were they also resemblances of the true seruice. Now if nothing of al this were auailable to the people as touching saluation, vnlesse blood came be­tweene, from thence we may easily gather that we haue no­thing to doe with God, vnlesse Christ by his blood present himselfe betweene him and vs. And in this regard, the very doctrine it selfe, although it be the will and inuiolable truth of God, yet it shall haue no efficacie in vs to our profit, vn­lesse it be consecrated by blood: as by this verse is well ex­pressed. I know that others expound it otherwise: for after their sense, The Tabernacle is the bodie of the Church: the vessels are all the faithfull, by whose ministerie God serues himselfe. But that which I haue said agrees much better. [Page 191]For as soone as they were to call vpon God, they turned to­wards the Sanctuarie: and it is a manner of speech common in the Scripture, to say they presented themselues before the face of the Lord, when they appeared in the Temple.

This is the blood of the Testament.] Vers. 20 If it be the blood of the Testament, the Testament then is not established and rati­fied without blood: neither is blood sufficient for purga­tion without the Testament: wherefore it is necessarily re­quired that both of them be ioyned together. And wee see also that the figure and outward signe was not giuen, till the law was expounded. For what Sacrament were it, The word and the Sacrament must goe toge­ther. if the word did not go before? therfore the signe is but as a thing hanging and depending vpon the word. And we must note withall that this word is not a mumbling of it like a charme vsed in some magicall arre, but that which is distinctly pro­nounced with a lowd voyce; and it must also be spoken to the people: all which the words of the couenant which was appointed vnto you, doe shew. Therefore they abuse the Sa­craments, nay they wickedly corrupt them, Exposition of the vvord, the life and soule of the Sacra­ment. when as there is no exposition of the commandement added; which exposi­tion is, as you would say, the life and soule of the Sacrament. The Papists then who separate the vnderstanding of the things signified from the signes, doe retaine the dead ele­ments onely without any efficacie. This place admonisheth vs, that all the promises of God are then profitable vnto vs, when they are established, and confirmed by the blood of Christ. For when S. Paul witnesseth, 2. Cor. 1.2. that all the promises of God are Yea and Amen in Christ, The promises profit vs no­thing, vnlesse faith see them written in our hearts with the blood of Christ. it is then per­formed when his blood is ingrauen in our hearts as a seale: or rather when we not only heare God speake: but doe al­so therewithall see Christ presenting himselfe for a pledge of those things which the worde vttereth. If so bee this thought possesse vs: to wit, that all that which wee reade is not only written with inck, but with the blood of the Sonne of God: and that when the Gospell is preached this blood distilleth with the voyce; surely wee shall be so much the more attentiue, and shall receiue the word with much grea­ter [Page 192]reuerence, than euer wee did before.

The sprinkling, whereof Moses makes mention, was once a figure of this. Although there bee more to be vnderstood in these words, than Moses expresseth. For ye heare him not say that the booke was sprinkled, but the people: neither makes he any mention at all of goates, or of wooll died in pur­ple, nor of hysope. Now as touching the booke, although it can­not bee plainly prooued that it was sprinkled, yet there is some probable coniecture of it, whereby wee may gather that it is so, because it is said, that Moses tooke the booke before all the people and read it in their hearing, after the sacrifice was ended: Exod. 24.5.6.7 to the end the people might enter into an obligation vnto God, answering to the solemne coue­nant pronounced by the mouth of Moses. As touching the rest, it seemes to me the Apostle hath intermingled diuers purgations, of which wee may giue the same reason. And surely no inconuenience is in it; seeing he handles a gene­rall point touching the purgation of the olde Testament, which was made by blood. Now whereas they made a sprinkle of hysope, and of purple wooll, we neede not doubt but they represented the mysticall sprinkling which is made by the holy Spirit. The vertue of Hysope. We know that Hysope hath a singular ver­tue to purge and to digest superfluous humours: so Christ vseth his spirit as a water-sprinkle to sprinkle vs with his blood, when as hee giueth a liuely feeling of repentance, 1 when he consumes the peruerse affections of our flesh, 2 and when he dieth vs with the rich and noble colour of his righ­teousnes. 3 For we must not imagine that God ordained these things for nothing. Dauid also in the 51. Psalme alludes to this when hee saith; Purge me O Lord with hysope, and I shall be cleane. Those who will be sober in searching out the meaning of these things, will content themselues with that which we haue touched vpon this place, and will spare their labour to goe search out higher speculations.

And almost all things vnder the law, Vers. 22 &c.] When he saith almost, it seemes his meaning is to shew that there are some other things which are purged after another manner. And [Page 193]indeed they often vsed washings with water both to clense themselues withall, as also other impure things. Notwith­standing euen this water had no vertue to clense but as they had it from the sacrifices: so as the Apostle saith true, when for a conclusion he sets downe, that without shedding of blood there was no remission. Wherefore impuritie was imputed vntill such time as it was clensed by sacrifice. And as out of Christ there is neither puritie nor saluatiō, so without blood nothing could be pure nor healthfull: for Christ must ne­uer be separated from the sacrifice of his death. But the A­postles meaning was simply to say, that this signe was ad­ded alwaies in a manner. And if it fell out that the purga­tion were not sometimes so made, yet notwithstanding it depended vpon the blood, seeing all the ceremonies did as you would say borrow their vertue from this generall pur­gation. Neither are we to imagine that euery particular man among the people was sprinkled: (for if it had bin so, how could so little a portion of blood haue satisfied so great a multitude?) notwithstanding the purgation came to all. So then this word almost, is as much as if it had been said, The vse of this ceremonie was very frequent, so as it was very seldome left out in ordinarie purgations. For whereas Chry­sostome thinkes that by this word is signified an improprie­tie, because all was there in figures onely, it is nothing neere the Apostles meaning. There is no remission. By this meanes men were shut out from before the face of God: for in as much as hee is iustly angrie with them all, they could not promise themselues to finde any fauour with him, till he were appeased. There is but one meanes to procure reconciliation: which is the blood of Christ. Now there was but one meane whereby to appease him: to wit, by the satisfaction which was made by blood. Wherefore we must looke for no pardon of sins, if we bring not blood. Which wee then doe, when by faith we haue our recourse to the death of Christ.

It was then necessarie, &c.] To the end none should obiect, Vers. 23 that the blood by which the old Testament was cōsecrated, was not the blood of the Testator; the Apostle preuents it, and saith, that wee are not to marueile if this Tabernacle [...] [Page 196]then which some doe aske, and quite from the purpose, to wit, whether Christ was not alwaies present there. For the Apostle disputes here onely of the intercession, by which he entred into the celestiall Sanctuarie.

Not that he should offer himselfe often, Vers. 25 &c.] How is he then a Priest, Obiection. may some man say, if he make no sacrifices? I an­swere, Answere. it is not required in the person or office of a Priest to be alwaies in the continuall act of offring sacrifice. For in the law it selfe there was euery yeere certaine daies ordai­ned for the chiefest sacrifices: and the sacrifices which were ordinarily performed, had their limits to the morning, and the euening. Now seeing this only sacrifice that Christ once offered hath alwaies his strength and vertue, yea and is per­petuall as touching the efficacie thereof, wee must not won­der if his eternall Priesthood be established in the vertue of this sacrifice, which neuer perisheth, or hath an end. And here againe he shewes what difference there is, and in what things, betweene Christ and the Leuiticall Priesthood. As touching the Sanctuarie, he hath spoken heretofore: but he notes a difference in the kinde of sacrifice, because Christ of­fered himselfe, and not a beast. And then hee notes another difference, to wit, that he did not often offer this sacrifice, as vnder the law, where they often, yea and almost continual­ly reiterated their sacrifices.

For then he must haue often suffered, Vers. 26 &c.] He sheweth how absurd and vnreasonable a thing it should be, if wee content not our selues with the onely sacrifice of Christ. For from thence he concludes, that he must then haue often suffered, because death is alwaies ioyned with the sacrifice. Now there is no reason at all to grant this latter: it followes then that the vertue of this onely sacrifice is eternall, and stretch­eth it selfe vnto all times. He saith, since the foundation of the world, because that in all times since the beginning there haue bin sinnes which haue had neede of purgation. If then the sacrifice of Christ had not been effectuall from the be­ginning, Christs sacrifice effectuall from the beginning. none of the Fathers had obtained saluation. For seeing that of themselues they were culpable before God, [Page 197]and deserued his wrath, they had bin destitute of the reme­die of redemption, and had had no meanes to escape the iudgement seate of God, vnles Christ by enduring of death once, had suffered from the beginning of the world to the end thereof, for the obtaining of Gods fauour for men. And therefore let vs satisfie our selues with this onely sacrifice, vnlesse peraduenture wee expect many deaths of Christ. By this it also euidently appeares how friuolous that distin­ction of the Papists is, The friuolous distinction of the Papists, touching the bloodie and vnbloodie sa­crifice. in which subtilty they so much please themselues, when they say that the offring vp of Christ vpon the crosse was bloodie; but the sacrifice of the Masse, which they forge to be offered vp euery day, is without blood. For if this suttle shift may haue place, the Spirit of God shall be blamed of vnadursednes, because he remembred not him­selfe concerning this. For the Apostle takes it for a thing out of question, that there is no sacrifice without death. I passe not, that the ancient Doctors haue spoken thus: for it is not in the power of men to forge what sacrifices they list. This principle of the holy Ghost remaines sure, that sins are not purged by sacrifices, vnlesse there be effusion of blood. Therefore it is an inuention of the diuell, to hold that Christ should be often offered. But now in the end of the world he appeared once, &c. He calles the end of the world, that which S. Paul calles the fulnes of time, Gal. 4: for the time was then expired, which the Lord had ordained by his eternall de­cree. And by this meanes the curiosities of men are answe­red, to the end they should not presume to enquire; some, why it came not sooner; others, why rather then, than at another time: for we ought to rest and stay our selues in the secret counsell of God, who best knowes to giue a reason of it, although it be not manifested to vs. To bee short, the A­postle signifies that the death of Christ fell out iust at that time wherein his Father sent him into the world for that purpose: who as he hath in his owne power the lawfull go­uernment of all things, so hath he the times also, seeing hee ordreth them by an admirable wisedome, howsoeuer it bee often hidden from vs. Moreouer, this consummation or [Page 198]end, is opposed to the imperfection of the time past: for God did so keepe the people of the old Testament in sus­pence, that one might easily iudge it was not yet come to a firme and setled estate. For this cause S. Paul teacheth in the 1. Cor. 10.11. that the ends of the world are come vpon vs, signifying therby that the kingdom of Christ hath brought the fulfilling of all things. But if the fulnes of time were then when Christ appeared to purge our sinnes, they doe him great iniurie and outrage who would that his sacrifice should be renued; as if all things were not fulfilled at his death. He then appeared once: for if the thing should bee done the second, or the third time, there should be imperfe­ction in the first oblation: which were a thing repugnant to perfection. For the destruction of sinne, by the sacrifice of him­selfe. This agreeth with the prophecie of Daniel, by which the end of the sacrifices was foretolde, after the promise made of the sealing vp, and abolishing of sins. For to what end should purgations serue after the destruction of sinnes? Now this destruction consists in this, that sinnes are no more imputed to those who haue their refuge to the sacrifice of Christ: Hovv sinne is said to be de­stroyed. for although necessitie be laid vpon vs to aske par­don euery day, because we do euery day prouoke the wrath of God afresh against vs, notwithstanding for as much as wee are alwaies reconciled to God by the pledge of Christ his onely death, and not otherwise: therefore it is rightly said that sinne is destroyed by it.

And as it is appointed vnto men to die once, Vers. 27 &c.] The mea­ning is this, seeing that wee waite with patience for the day of iudgement after the death of man, because it is a com­mon law of nature the which it is not lawful to resist: wher­fore should there be lesse patience in waiting for the second comming of Christ? For if so be the long space of time doe derogate nothing from the hope of the blessed resurrection amongst men, what absurditie were it to giue lesse honour to Christ? Now we giue him lesse, if we call him to a second death, Obiection. seeing he is dead once for all. If it be obiected that some haue died twice, as Lazarus, and such other, the solu­tion [Page 199]is easie, to wit, Answere. the Apostle speakes here of the ordinarie condition of men: 1. Cor. 15.51. 1. Thess. 4.17. so that those which in a moment shalbe dispoyled of corruption by a sudden change, are excepted out of this number. For in this manner of speech he com­prehends none but those which of long time haue waited in the dust for the redemption of their bodies. Vers. 28 He shall appeare the second time without sinne. The Apostle still aimes at this marke, to wit, that we should not vexe our selues with vaine and froward desires after new purgations, because the death of Christ alone, is sufficient for vs. And therefore he saith, that he once appeared with sacrifice to purge away sinnes, and that by his second appearing he shall openly manifest what efficacie his death hath had, so as sinne shall no more haue power to hurt. To abolish sinnes, that is, by his satisfa­ction to deliuer those from the fault, and from condemna­tion which haue sinned. He saith many, for all: as in Rom. 5.15. True it is that Christs death profits not all: but this comes to passe, because their incredulitie hindreth them. But it were in vaine to contend hereabouts in this place, be­cause the Apostle disputes not whether the death of Christ profits a few or many: but his plaine meaning is, that hee died for others, and not for himselfe. Wherefore he oppo­seth many, to one onely.

But what meanes he by these words, that Christ shall ap­peare without sinne? By the word sinne, some vnderstand the purgation or sacrifice purging sin: as Rom. 8.3. and 2. Cor. 5.21. and in many other places of Moses: but in my iudge­ment, he meant something more speciall, to wit, that when Christ shall come hee shall manifest how true it is that hee hath abolished sinnes: so as there shall be no more need of any other sacrifice to appease God. As if hee should say, when wee shall come before the iudgement seate of Christ, then wee shall feele that nothing was wanting in his death. To which that also is to be referred which he addes by and by after, To saluation to those which looke for him: Others doe construe it otherwise on this manner; To those that looke for him for saluation. But I thinke the other sense is more [Page 200]proper. For his meaning is, that those shall feele a full sal­uation from Christ, who with quiet minds doe rest vpon it. For this looking for, is to be referred to the circumstance of the present matter. True it is that the Scripture in other pla­ces attributes this in common to all the faithfull; that they waite for the comming of the Lord, to the end that by it they may be discerned from the vnbeleeuers; to whom also the onely mention of this his comming is fearefull as soone as they heare tell of it: but because the Apostle contends now that we ought to rest our selues satisfied in the onely sacrifice of Christ, he calles it the looking for of Christ, when being contented with this onely redemption, we lust not af­ter new remedies or helps.

CHAP. X.

1 For the law hauing the shadow of good things to come, and not the very image of the things, can neuer with " or, with the same. those sacrifices, which they offer yeare by yeare continually san­ctifie the commers thereunto.

2 For would they not then haue ceased to haue beene offered, because that the offerers once purged, should not haue had no more conscience of sinnes.

3 But in Leuit. 16.14. those sacrifices there is a remembrance againe e­uery yeare.

4 For it is vnpossible that the blood of Bulls and goats should take away sinnes.

FOr the law hauing the shadow, Vers. 1 &c.] He borrows this simili­tude from the art of painting: for he takes this word sha­dow in this place, otherwise than it is taken, Col. 2.17. where S. Paul calles the old ceremonies, shadows, because they had not the very substance of the things in them, which they did represent. But the Apostle saith here, they were like rude draughts, which are but the shadows of the liuely painting. For painters are wont to drawe that which they purpose to [Page 201]counterfeit or represent with a cole, A similitude setting forth the difference between the law and the Gospell. before they set on the liuely colours with the pensill. The Apostle then puts this difference betweene the law and the Gospell: to wit, that that which at this day is drawne and painted with fresh and liuely colours, was onely shadowed out vnder the law by a rude or grosse draught. Thus he yet againe confirmes that which he said before, to wit, that the law was no vaine thing, neither the ceremonies thereof vnprofitable. For although it had not the perfect image of heauenly things, as if the workeman had put his last indeauour to it, yet euen this rough draught was greatly profitable to the Auncient Fa­thers: albeit our condition be now much better. And let vs obserue, that euen those things which are now set before our eyes, were shewed to them a farre off. The Iewes and Gentiles haue but one means of saluation for the substance: the diuersitie stands onely in the manner of reuelation. And therefore both we, and they haue the same Christ, the same righteous­nesse, the same sanctification, and the same saluation: there is no difference or diuersitie, but in the manner of setting them forth. I thinke by these words of good things to come, he meanes eternall good things. I confesse indeede that the kingdome of Christ which we now enioy, was long agoe foretold to come: but the words of the Apostle signifie that we haue the liuely pourtraiture of good things to come. He meanes then that sample and spirituall patterne, the full en­ioying whereof is deferred vntill the day of the resurrection, and to the world to come. And yet I doe againe confesse that these good things began to be reuealed from the beginning of Christ his kingdome: but the question is now, that the good things to come in this place are not onely so called in re­gard of the old Testament, but because we also doe yet hope and waite for them.

Which they offered yeere by yeere continually:] He speakes chiefely of the yeerely sacrifice, whereof mention is made Leuit. 16. although in naming one kind, he comprehends the whole. Thus he reasoneth then, Where there is no more conscience and remorse for sinne, there also is no more need of oblations. Now vnder the Law they offered one and the same offering often. Therefore it followes that God [Page 202]was not satisfied; the condemnation taken away, neither the consciences of men quieted: for if it had been otherwise, they would then haue ceased to offer any more sacrifices. Moreouer, we are diligently to obserue, that he saith with the same sacrifices, which had the like reason. For they were esteemed rather by the same ordinance of God, than of di­uers beasts. And this argument alone is sufficient of it selfe to refute the subtiltie of the Papists, by which they thinke they finely auoyde the absurditie of excusing the sacrifice of the Masse. For when we tell them it is superfluous to reite­rate the sacrifice, seeing that which Christ hath once offered retaines his vertue for euer; they by and by reply, the sacri­fice offered in the Masse, is not another, but the same. This is their solution. But how doth the Apostle here contradict it? Thus, the sacrifice which is offered and many times reitera­ted: although it be the same, is not effectuall, nor sufficient for the purgation of sinnes. An obiection of the Papists an­swered, where­in they say they offer not an o­ther sacrifice, but the same vvhich Christ offered. Let the Papists now crie a thou­sand times if they will, that the sacrifice which they offer e­uery day, is the same sacrifice which Christ hath once made vpon the Crosse, and none other: I will alwaies maintaine against them by the mouth of the Apostle, that if the obla­tion of Christ had this vertue to appease God, then this his sacrifice hath not onely put an end to other oblations, but also that it is vnlawfull to reiterate the same: whereby we see, that it is an execrable sacriledge, to offer Christ in the Masse.

But in those sacrifices there is a remembrance, Vers. 3 &c.] Seeing the Gospell is the ambassage of our reconciliation with God, it is yet necessarie that the remembrance againe of sinnes should be made alwaies amongst vs euen at this day: but the Apostle signifieth that when sinnes are remembred, it is to the end the condemnation of them might be taken away, by the remedie of the sacrifice presently offered: he meanes not euery remembrance then, but that which brin­geth such a confession of faultes, and of the condemnation which they deserue before God, that it should be needfull to haue a sacrifice, to procure a remedie. Such is the sacrifice of [Page 203]the Masse amongst the Papists. For they forge that the grace of the death of Christ is there applied vnto vs, that our sins might be done away. But if the Apostle rightly collecteth that the sacrifices of the law were weake, because they were reiterated euery yeere to obtaine pardon: truly then a man may gather by the same reason that the sacrifice of the death of Christ was weake, if it must bee celebrated euery day, to the end the vertue of it may be applied vnto vs. Let them paint out their Masse then with what colours soeuer they will, yet shall they not bee able to auoide this fault, to wit, that in the same their sacrifice, they blaspheme, and of­fer wicked outrage vnto Christ.

For it is vnpossible that the blood of goates, &c.] Vers. 4 He confir­meth the former sentence by the same reason which he al­leaged heretofore, to wit, that the blood of beasts did not purge mens soules. True it is, the Iewes had therein a signe, and pledge of their true purgation, but it was another way: to wit, because the blood of a calfe signified the blood of Christ. But here the Apostle disputes of the value of the blood of beasts in it selfe: and therfore he doth rightly take away from them the vertue of purging. We are here then to vnderstand a close opposition, which is not expressed: as if hee had said, It is no marueile if the ancient sacrifices were weake and feeble, so as there was necessitie they should bee offered without ceasing: for there was nothing in them but the blood of beasts, which pearced not vnto the soule: but the blood of Christ is a farre other thing. We must not ther­fore measure the oblation which hee made, according to those oblations which went before.

5 Wherefore when he commeth into the world, he saith, Sa­crifice and offring thou wouldest not: Psal. 40.9. but a body hast thou or­dained me.

6 In burnt offrings and sinne offrings thou hast had no plea­sure.

7 Then said I, Lo, I come (in the beginning of the booke it is written of me) that I should doe thy will, O God. [...] [Page 206]God, vnlesse it were, as you would say, couered with this forme. It is necessarie then that we come to the kingdome of Christ, before this be perfectly accomplished in al points, to wit, that God required no sacrifices. There is such another place in the 16. Psalme, vers. 10. Thou wilt not suffer thine holy one to see corruption. For albeit God should haue de­liuered Dauid from corruption as touching himselfe, yet this was truly and onely fulfilled in Christ. There is great weight then in this speech, when he promiseth that he will do the will of God, for he leaues no place for the sacrifices. From hence then we gather, that he ceaseth not to obey God per­fectly, although hee vse no sacrifices: which yet could not be true, till after the abolishing of the law. I denie not but Dauid as well in this place, as in the 51. Psalme, ver. 18. doth not so lessen the estimation of the externall sacrifices, but that he still preferred that which was principall: and yet we must not doubt but he stretched his sight to the kingdome of Christ in both places. The Apostle then witnesseth that Christ is rightly brought in speaking in this Psalme: where amongst the Commandements of God, the sacrifices which God so streightly required vnder the law, are not set in the last place.

But a bodie hast thou ordained me.] The words of Dauid doe signifie another thing: for in the Psalme it is, Thou hast pearced mine eares. Which manner of speech some thinke to bee drawne from an ancient custome of the law. For if there were any which made none account of being set free at the Iubile, but would subiect himselfe to perpetuall bon­dage, his eare was to be pearced with an a [...]le, Exod. 21.6. This is the sense then after their opinion; Lord, I am thy seruant for euer. Notwithstanding I take it otherwise: to wit, that he yeelds himselfe teachable and obedient. For we are deafe, till God haue opened our eares: that is to say, till he hath corrected the dulnes and obstinacie which is rooted in vs. And yet there is a close antithesis betweene the rude and ignorant people (to whom the sacrifices were as sha­dowes or remembrances without vertue) and Dauid, to [Page 207]whom God had more liuely reuealed the lawfull and spiri­tual vse of the same. Now the Apostle following ye Greekes saith, A bodie hast thou ordained me. For the Apostles were not so scrupulous to recite the very words; prouided that they alwaies kept themselues from abusing the Scriptures falsely to their own aduantage. We must alwaies weigh and consider to what end they alleaged testimonies. For as tou­ching the drift and scope of the place, they were warie not to draw the Scriptures by violence to a wrong sense: but as touching the words and other things which concerne not the matter they entreate of, they giue themselues great li­bertie.

In the beginning of the booke, &c.] Vers. 7 The Hebrew word pro­perly signifies a roule. For we know that the bookes in olde time were folded vp after the manner of a roll. Now there is no inconuenience, if by this booke we vnderstand the law, which prescribes the rule of holy life to all the children of God. Although another exposition seemes more true and proper: to wit, that he confesseth himselfe to be of the num­ber of those who yeild themselues obedient vnto God. I graunt that the law commands all of vs to obey God: But Dauid meanes that he is numbred among those who are called to obey God. And after, he protests that he obeyed this vocation, when he saith, I desired to doe thy will. Which specially agrees vnto Christ. For although all the faithfull do aspire to the righteousnesse of God, yet there is none but Christ which may be said to be wholly addicted to doe the will of God. And yet notwithstanding this place ought to kindle in vs a readinesse to obey. For, for this cause Christ is set before vs, as the patterne of perfect obedience, to the end that all which are his, should inforce themselues to fol­low his steppes, striuing who can be formost: yea that they altogether with one consent may answer the calling of god, as also in their whole life to giue approbation that these words, Loe I come, are truly fulfilled in them. To the same purpose also is that to be referred which followeth: It is written of me that I should doe thy will, O God. As it is said else­where, [Page 208]that the end of our election is, to be holy and with­out blame before him. Eph. 1.4.

He taketh away the first, Vers. 9 that he may establish the second.] Here you see why and to what purpose this place is allead­ged: to wit, to the ende we might know, that the full and perfect righteousnesse vnder the kingdome of Christ, hath no neede of the sacrifices of the law. For the will of God, as touching the rule of perfection, is established, though they be taken away. It followes then, that since the sacrifice of Christ is come, the sacrifices of beasts ought to cease; seeing they haue nothing in cōmon with him. For (as we haue said) Dauid in this place had no occasion to reiect the sacrifices for any fault comming from them: seeing he bends not his speech against hypocrites, neither reprooues he the supersti­tious abuse of Gods worshippe and seruice therein; but de­nies that the vse of sacrifices should be required of a faithful man, which was taught in holinesse: testifying that such a one may perfectly obey God without them.

By which will we are sanctified.] Vers. 10 Hauing applied the place of Dauid to his purpose, hee now by occasion turnes some words to his profit: rather to deck and beautifie the matter withall, than precisely to follow the exposition of the said place. Dauid protests, not so much in his owne person, as in the person of Christ, that he is ready to doe the will of God. This extends it selfe to all the members of Christ. For the doctrine of S. Paul is generall, where he saith, This is the will of God, euen your sanctification, that euery one of you should abstaine from vncleannesse. 1. Thess. 4.3. But because the example of this obedience was in Christ farre more ex­cellent than in any other, principally by taking vpon him the forme of a seruant, and then in presenting himselfe to the death of the crosse: for this cause the Apostle saith, that Christ hath satisfied the commandement of his father, in of­fering himselfe a sacrifice; and that we by this meanes haue beene sanctified.

When he saith by the offering of the bodie of Iesus Christ, he alludes to that part of the Psalme, A bodie hast thou ordai­ned [Page 209]me, at the least it is so in the Greeke. And thus he signi­fies that Christ found sufficient matter in himselfe where­with to appease his father: Christ alone is sufficient to ful­fill whatsoeuer God requires. so as he needed no supplies from any other. For if the Leuiticall priest had had a fitte bodie, the sacrifices of beasts had beene superfluous. But Christ a­lone sufficeth, and of himselfe is sufficient to fulfill whatsoe­uer God requireth.

11 And euery Priest standeth daily ministring, and oft times offereth one manner of offering, which can neuer take a­way sinnes.

12 But this man after he had offered one sacrifice for sins, sitteth for euer at the right hand of God,

13 And from hencefoorth carrieth, Psal. 110.2. 1. Cor. 15.25. till his enemies be made his footestoole.

14 For with one offring hath he consecrated for euer them that are sanctified.

15 For the holy Ghost also beareth vs record: for after that he had said before.

16 This is the Testament that I will make vnto them after those daies, saith the Lord, I will put my lawes in their hearts, Ier. 31.33. and in their mindes I will write them.

17 And I will remember their sinnes and iniquities no more.

18 Now where remission of these things is, there is no more offring for sinne.

ANd euery Priest, &c.] Vers. 11 The conclusion of the whole dis­putation is, that the custome of offring euery day is wholy disagreeing & contrarie to the Priesthood of Christ. And that for this cause since his comming, both the office of the Leuiticall Priests, as also the manner and custome of of­fring euery day, is ended. For the nature of things repug­nant is such, that when the one is established, the other falls downe. Hitherunto hee hath very sufficiently debated the question, touching the establishing of the Priesthood of Christ: it remaines then that the old Priesthood doe cease, [Page 210]which agreeth not with Christs. For all the faithfull haue a full and absolute consecration in his onely oblation. Al­though we may expound the Greeke word, He hath finished, or perfected, Vers. 14 yet I had rather say He hath consecrated: because the question is now touching the things which concerne the seruice of God. When he saith, those which are sanctified, vnder this word he comprehends all the children of God: and admonisheth vs therein that wee lose time to seeke the grace of our sanctification any where els.

But least men should make themselues beleeue that Christ is now idle in heauen, he saith againe that he is set at the right hand of the Father. Vers. 12 By which manner of speech (as we haue seene elsewhere) is signified rule and power. And therefore wee haue no neede to feare that hee will suffer the vertue of his death to decay or be quenched, or that he will suffer it to lie idlely buried: he, I say, who for this cause is liuing to the end he may fill heauen and earth with his ver­tue. Moreouer, hee admonisheth vs by the wordes of this Psalme, how long this estate or condition must endure: to wit, till such time as Christ hath wholy subdued all his ene­mies. Verse 13 Wherefore if our faith seeke Christ sitting at the right hand of God, and content it selfe that he is set there, we shal in the end enioy the fruite of this victorie: wee shall, I say, triumph with our head, being vnclothed of the corruption of our flesh, after that our enemies, Satan, Sinne, Death, and the whole world shall be troden vnder our feete.

For the holy Ghost also beareth witnes, Vers. 15 &c.] It is not super­fluous or causelesse that he brings in this testimonie of Iere­mie the second time. Heretofore hee alleaged it to another end: to wit, to shew that it was necessary the old Testament should be abolished, in regard a new was promised, that it might correct the weaknes of the old. But now he aimes at another thing. For hee onely grounds himselfe, and stands vpon this speech, Their sinnes, and their iniquities will I re­member no more: and thereof gathers, that there is no more vse left for sacrifices, seeing that sinnes are done away. It may seeme this consequence is not very firme. For howsoe­uer [Page 211]heretofore there were innumerable promises of the re­mission of sinnes in the Law, and in the Prophets; yet not­withstanding the Church ceased not for all that to offer sa­crifices still for themselues: and therfore remission of sinnes excludes not sacrifices. But if we doe yet more neerely con­sider of euery point; the Fathers had also the same promi­ses of remission of sins vnder the law that we now haue: and resting their faith vpon thē, did call vpon God, and reioyced that they obtained pardō. And yet notwithstanding all this, the Prophet as if he spake of some new thing not yet heard of, saith, that there shall be no more remembrance of sinnes before God, vnder the new Couenant. From this we gather, that sinnes are now pardoned after another manner than they were in old time. But this diuersitie consists neither in the word, nor in faith, but in the ransome of the remission.

God now then no more remembers sinnes and iniqui­ties, because the purgation hath been made for all, once. For otherwise the Prophet hath affirmed in vaine, that it should be a benefit, and grace of the new Testament, That God would remember our sinnes no more. Furthermore, seeing wee are come to the end of the disputation which is here handled touching the Priesthood of Christ; the readers are to be aduertised in few words, that the inuention of the Pa­pists touching the sacrifice of the Masse, is no lesse refuted in this place, than the sacrifices of the law are hereby abo­lished. They maintaine that their Masse is a sacrifice to doe away the sinnes both of the quicke and the dead: The A­postle on the contrarie saith, that euen this sacrifice of Christ ought not to be reiterated of any: neither doth he only say that this sacrifice of Christ is one, but also that it was offered once. Adde hereunto that he often attributes to Christ alone the honour of the Priesthood, so as none is sufficient or meete to offer Christ, but Christ himselfe onely. None fit to of­fer Christ but himselfe. They haue yet an euasion, when they call it an vnbloodie sacrifice: but the Apostle without exception affirmes, that to make a sa­crifice, death is required. Moreouer, the Papists haue yet another shift, when they replie that the Masse is an applying [Page 212]of the onely sacrifice once done. But the Apostle teacheth on the contrary, that the causes why the sacrifices of the law were abolished by the death of Christ, was because that in them men remembred sinnes. Foure maine reasons prouing the Masse to be full of sacri­ledge. Whence it appeares that this kinde of applying which they haue forged, is ceased. In a word, let the Papists turne them on which side they list, yet shal they neuer be able to auoide it, but that the present dis­putation of the Apostle doth still openly discouer that their Masse is full of sacriledge.

For first of al the Apostle is witnes, 1 that there was no man which was sufficient to offer Christ, but himselfe onely, and in the Masse hee is offered by the hands of another. Se­condly, 2 the Apostle not onely maintaines that Christ his sa­crifice is but one, but also that it was but once done, so as it is vnlawfull to reiterate the same: In the Masse, although they buzze that it is the same sacrifice, yet notwithstanding it appeares that they doe it euery day: and themselues con­fesse it. 3 Thirdly, the Apostle alloweth no sacrifice without blood, and death: they babble in vaine then that the sacri­fice which they offer is vnbloodie. 4 Fourthly, when the que­stion is of the obtaining pardon for our offences, the Apostle commaunds vs to haue our recourse to this onely sacrifice which Christ once offered vpon the crosse: and discernes vs from the Fathers by this marke, that the manner of often sa­crificing is abolished by the comming of Christ: The Pa­pists to the end that Christ his death may be fruitfull and profitable vnto vs, require daily applyings which is done by sacrifice: and thus Iewes and Christians should differ in nothing one from another, but in the externall signe.

19 Seeing therefore brethren, that by the blood of Iesus we may be bold to enter into the holy place.

20 By the new and liuing way, which he hath prepared for vs, through the vaile, which is his flesh:

21 And seeing wee haue an hie Priest, which is ouer the house of God.

22 Let vs draw neere with a true hart in assurance of faith, our hearts being pure from an euill conscience,

23 And washed in our bodies with pure water, let vs keep the profession of our hope without wauering (for he is faithfull which hath promised)

SEeing then brethren, &c.] Verse 19 He gathers his former doctrine into a conclusion or summe: after which he addes an exhortation both to very good purpose, & of great weight, threatning them seuerely which shall reiect the grace of Christ. Now the summe is, that all the ceremonies by which men had accesse into the Sanctuarie of God vnder the law, had their firme truth in Christ: so as the vse of them is su­perfluous and vnprofitable to him that enioyeth Christ. Now the better to expresse this, hee describes the accesse which Christ giues vs by an allegorie. For he compares hea­uen to the old Sanctuarie, and vnder a figuratiue manner of speech sets foorth the things which were spiritually fulfil­led in Christ. True it is that Allegories do sometimes rather darken, than illustrate the matter: but here they haue not a little grace; and besides, they bring much more light, when the Apostle transfers the old figures of the law to Christ: to the end we should know that all things which were shado­wed in the law, are now truly manifested in him. Now as there is almost no word here that hath not his weight, so let vs remember that there is also a close antithesis, shewing that the truth which is seene in Christ must needes abolish the ancient figures.

First he saith, that we haue libertie to enter into the holy pla­ces.] This priuiledge was neuer giuen to the Fathers vnder the law. For it was forbidden the people to enter into the visible Sanctuarie: vnlesse the high Priest bare the names of the twelue tribes vpon his shoulders, and twelue precious stones vpon his breast, for a remembrance of all the people. But now it is farre otherwise. For wee haue entrance into heauen, not by figure onely, but in very truth by the meanes of Christ: because he hath made vs royall Priests, 1. Pet. 2.9. He saith by the blood of Iesus: because that when the high Priest entred euery yeere, the doore of the Sanctuarie was [...] [Page 216]to a fained, and a double heart. In this word assurance, he shewes what the nature of faith is: and withall admonisheth vs that the grace of Christ cannot be receiued, but of those which bring with them an assured and certaine perswasion.

He calles it the clensing of the heart from an euill conscience, either when we are accounted pure before God, Vers. 23 hauing ob­tained remission of sinnes; or, when the heart purged from euill affections, pricketh vs no more forward with the pro­uocations of the flesh. For mine owne part I am content vn­der this word, to comprehend both the one and the other. That which followes of the body washed with pure water, ma­ny take it for Baptisme: but it seemes more probable to me, that the Apostle alludes to the auncient ceremonies of the law: so as by this word water, he signifies the holy spirit, as Ezech. 36.25. speakes, saying, I will poure cleane water vp­on you, &c. Now the summe of the whole matter is this, that we are partakers of Christ, if beeing sanctified in bodie, and in soule, we come to him: besides, that this sanctification is an assured faith, a pure conscience, and a cleannesse both of bodie, and soule, which proceedeth from the holy Ghost, and is accomplished by him: and not a sanctification which consists in an outward pompe of ceremonies. To the same purpose S. Paul exhorts the faithfull to purge themselues from all filthinesse of the flesh, and spirit, seeing God hath adopted them for his children. 2. Cor. 7.1.

Let vs keepe the profession, &c.] Because he here exhorts the Iewes to perseuerance, As hope springs out of saith, so doth [...]t also nourish the same. he calles it hope, rather than faith. For euen as hope springs out of faith, so also it nourisheth faith, and maintaines it vnto the end. Furthermore he requires confession: because it is no true faith, if it shew not it selfe forth before men. And it seemes he doth priuily reprooue the dissimulation of those, who to get fauour of their nation, were too scrupulous in the obseruation of the ceremonies of the law. He would not haue them to beleeue with the heart alone then, but also to shewe by effects in what honor and estimation they had Christ. Further, we are diligently to note the reason which he by and by addeth, to wit, that god [Page 217]who hath promised, is faithfull. 1 For first of all by this wee are taught, that the stay of our faith rests vpon this foundation, That God is faithfull. Now this truth consists in the promise. For before we beleeue, it is required that Gods voice goe before. Secondly, we are taught, 2 that euery voice or word of God is not sitte to beget faith in vs: for faith findes no foo­ting, nor rest, but in the promise onely. The promise of God, the onely obiect of faith. And from this place we gather also, that there is a relation and mutuall corre­spondencie betweene the faith of men, and the promises of God: for if God promise not, who can beleeue?

24 And let vs consider one another, to prouoke vnto loue, and to good workes.

25 Not forsaking the fellowship that wee haue among our selues, as the manner of some is: but let vs exhort one ano­ther, and that so much the more, because yee see the day draweth neere.

26 For if we sinne willingly after that we haue receiued and acknowledged the truth, there remaineth no more sacrifice for sinnes,

27 But a fearefull looking for of iudgement, and violent fire, which shall deuoure the aduersaries.

And let vs consider one another.] Vers. 24 I doubt not but he speaks particularly to the Iewes, and specially directs this his ex­hortation to them. We know well how great the arrogan­cie and pride of this nation was. For in regard they were of the stock and linage of Abraham, they so gloried therein, as if they onely were receiued into the couenant of eternal life; and therefore reiected all others. And thus beeing puffed vp with such a prerogatiue, and despising all people in re­gard of themselues, they onely would haue the estimation to be the Church of God: and which more is, they proudly attributed vnto themselues the title of the Church, as being onely proper vnto them. Now to correct this their pride, the Apostles were constrained to take so much the more pains. And in mine opinion, the Apostles drift here is, that the [Page 216] [...] [Page 217] [...] [Page 218]Iewes should not bee displeased to see the Gentiles made partakers with them, and to bee vnited with them into the same bodie of the Church. Now in the first place he saith, Let vs consider one another: for thē God gathered his Church both of Iewes and Gentiles, amongst whom in former time there had been alwaies great discord, so as this societie was as if one would haue made fire and water to haue agreed to­gether. And therefore the Iewes withdrew and separated themselues, thinking it an vnreasonable thing, that the Gentiles shuld be compared with thē. Against this peruerse prouocation of enuie which pricked them forward, the A­postle sets a contrarie prouocation, to wit, of loue: for the Greeke word which he vseth, signifies an earnestnes of con­tention. To the end then that the Iewes who were inflamed with enuie, should not enter into combat against the Gen­tiles, he exhorts them to an holy emulation: to wit, that they should stirre vp and prouoke one another to loue. That which by & by after followeth, confirmes this exposi­tion: Not forsaking (saith hee) the fellowship, or our assem­bling. The composition of the Greeke word is to be noted, which signifies not simply an assemblie, or a congregation, but a congregation augmented with new encreasings. The wall being then broken downe, God assembled those toge­ther which had bin strangers from the Church, to knit them vnto his children, Ephes. 2.14. Thus the Gentiles were a new and vnwonted encreasing of the Church. The Iewes tooke this as a great dishonour to them, so as many among them reuolted from the Church; thinking they had sufficient oc­casion so to doe, because of such a mingling of the Gentiles with them. For they could not easily bee perswaded that they ought to lose their prerogatiue. Why so? they thought that the right of adoption belonged to them properly and particularly. The Apostle then admonisheth them that they should not bee stirred vp to forsake the Church because of this equalitie: and to the end they might not thinke that he admonisheth them without cause, he giues them to wit, that it is a common vice whereof they were guiltie. We now vn­derstand [Page 219]what the Apostles meaning is, and what necessitie there was that constrained him to make this exhortation. Yet we must from hence gather a generall doctrine. For this disease raignes euery where among men, to wit, that euery man is readie to preferre himselfe before his brother, but e­specially those who seeme to haue somewhat in them more excellent than others, can hardly indure that their inferiours should be made their equalls. Moreouer there is almost in al of vs such emulation, that euery one would willingly make Churches apart, if it were possible: why? because it is hard to apply a mans selfe to the manners of others. The rich they enuie one another. And scarcely shall you finde one among an hundred that would bestow so much as the naming of one of their poore brethren, It is very diffi­cult to nourish and conserue the band of loue and ami­t [...]e among bre­thren. much lesse to esteeme them as brethren, were it not that they are drawne vnto it either by some likenesse and agreement in manners, or by other al­lurements of outward profit and commoditie: otherwise it is more than difficult to nourish amongst vs this perpetuall concord.

Wherefore this admonition is exceeding needfull euen for vs, to the end we may be stirred vp and prouoked there­by to loue, rather than to enuie, and that we separate not our selues from them with whom God hath coupled vs, but that we loue all those with a brotherly affection, who are vnited with vs by one consent of faith. And in very trueth, by how much the more Satan watcheth by all meanes to plucke vs out of the Church, or craftely, A meanes to preserue vniti [...] and as it were by stealth, to withdraw vs from the same: so much the more ought we to be carefull to seeke, and to loue vnitie. And this we shall doe when none of vs takes libertie to please him­selfe, more than he ought, but rather all of vs ayming at this marke, euen to prouoke one another to loue: and that there be no other emulation amongst vs, but to exceede one ano­ther in good works. For certainly the contempt of our bre­thren, our peeuishnesse, enuie; the ouer excessiue loue and e­stimation of our selues, and all other wayeward prouocati­ons, doe sufficiently testifie both to our selues and others, [...] [Page 222]account of euery day as if it were the last.

For if we sinne willingly.] He shewes what a seuere venge­ance of God is neere to all those who reuolt from the grace of Christ: for being once depriued of that onely saluation, they are destinate alreadie as it were to certaine perdition. Nouatus with all his route armed themselues heretofore with this place, The error of Nouatus. to take away all hope of pardon indifferent­ly from all those which should fall into sin after baptisme. Those which were not able to refute his falsehood, thought it better not to giue credit to this Epistle, than to consent to such an absurditie: but the true exposition of this place, al­though it should receiue no helpe from any other place but it selfe, will bee sufficient to repell the impudencie of Nouatus. By this word, if we sinne, The Apostle meanes not those that sinne in this or in that regard, but those who hauing forsaken the Church, doe wholy estrange themselues from Christ. For he entreates not here of some particular kind of sinne, but expresly reprooues those who wittingly and willingly reiected the society of the Church. Now there is great difference betweene particular faults, Great diffe­rence betweene particular faults, and a generall apo­stasie. and such a ge­nerall falling away, by which wee doe wholy cut our selues off from the grace of Christ. And because this can befall none but those who haue beene alreadie enlightened, there­fore the Apostle saith, If we sinne willingly after we haue recei­ued the knowledge of the truth: as if he should say, If wee doe wittingly and willingly reiect the grace which wee haue re­ceiued. Now wee may see well how farre off this doctrine disagrees from the error of Nouatus: And that the Apostle here onely comprehends Apostaraes, it doth euidently ap­peare by the deduction of the text. For it tends to shew, that those who were once receiued into the Church, should not forsake the same, as some were accustomed to doe. He saith, that there remaines now no more sacrifice for sinnes, for those who doe thus; because they willingly sinned after they had receiued and acknowledged that truth.

But yet Christ alwaies offereth himselfe to poore sinners which are fallen into some one kinde of sinne or other, so as [Page 223]they neede not seeke any other sacrifice to take and put a­way their sinnes. He saith then, that there remaines no more sacrifice for them, who turne away themselues from the death of Christ: which a man neuer comes to doe by one particular sinne; but when therewithall faith is wholy re­nounced. Now howsoeuer this seueritie of God be fearefull and horrible, and is set forth to feare men, yet it cannot be accused of crueltie. For seeing the death of Christ is the on­ly remedie by which we are deliuered from eternall death, those who endeauour as much as they can to abolish the same; with the vertue and benefit of it, doe they not deserue that despaire onely should be allotted for them? God doth alwaies draw them to reconciliation with him, who abide in Christ, they are sprinkled with his blood, their sinnes are alwaies blotted out by his perpetuall sacrifice. And if it be so, that we must not seek saluation out of him, let vs not wō ­der if all those who willingly forsake him, are depriued from all hope of pardon. So much signifies this word no more. For the sacrifice of Christ is auaileable to the faithfull, euen to the very last breath, although they sinne often: and euen for this cause it is, that it alwaies holds his strength and vigour, because it cannot be auoided that they should not be subiect to sinne, as long as they dwell in the flesh. The A­postle speakes then of them onely, who wofully abondo­ning Christ, doe depriue themselues of the benefit of his death. This member, After they haue acknowledged the truth: is put to aggrauate their ingratitude. For he who willingly and of deliberate malice quencheth the light of God kind­led in his heart, what excuse hat he, or can he alleadge for himselfe before God? Wherefore, let vs learne not onely with reuerence, and a readie teachablenesse to receiue the spirit of truth which is offered vs, but also constantly to per­seuere in the knowledge of it, to the end this sharpe ven­geance of the contempt thereof fall not vpon vs.

But a fearefull looking for of iudgement.] He meanes the torment of an euill conscience, which wicked contemners doe feele within them, who as they neuer had any taste or [...]

Vnder two or three witnesses.] This serues nothing to the present matter, but it is a part of Moses his policie, to witte, that two or three witnesses were required to conuince the offendour of his offence. Notwithstanding we gather more certainely of this, what crime the Apostle meant to note out vnto vs. For if this had not beene added, a doore had beene opened to many false co [...]ectures. But now the matter is out of all question, None ought to be condemned but such as are conuinced by witaesses. that he speakes here of Apostasie. Yet wee must note herewithall this equitie which almost all Poli­tiques haue followed: to wit, That none be condemned, till he be conuicted by witnesses.

Which treadeth vnder foote the Sonne of God.] This is com­mon both to the Apostataes of the law and the Gospel: to wit, that both the one and the other doe perish without mercie: but the manner of their ruine is diuers. For the Apo­stle threatens not bodily death alone, to the contemners of Christ, but also eternall damnation. For this cause he saith, that these haue deserued a most grieuous torment. Now he sets forth the reuolt of Christians by three formes of speech. For he saith first, that by this meanes, the sonne of God is tro­den vnder foote: 2. that his blood is counted a prophane thing: 3. that they despite the spirit of grace. Now it is worse to tread vnder feete, than to despise: and the dignitie of Christ is far aboue the dignitie of Moses. And note also, that he doth not simply oppose the Gospell to the law, but the person of Christ, and of the holy Ghost, to the person of Moses onely. And counteth the blood of the Testament as an vnholy thing. He aggrauates this ingratitude, by making comparison of the benefits. Questionlesse it is a great villanie to prophane the blood of Christ, which is the matter of our sanctificati­on. Now they doe it which reuolt from the faith: for the eie of our faith lookes not vpon the bare and naked doctrine, but to the blood by which our saluation is established. And therefore he calles it the blood of the Testament, because the promises thereof are then ratified and confirmed vnto vs, when this pledge of our redemption is added.

But he shewes what the meane of this ratification is, [Page 227]when he saith, by which we are sanctified: because the blood which Christ shed should nothing profit vs, if we were not sprinkled therewithall by the holy Ghost. From thence comes both our purgation, and holinesse. Notwithstanding he alludes to the auncient manner of sprinkling, which ser­ued nothing at all to true sanctification, Foure effects which the holy Ghost works in vs. but was only a sha­dow or figure of it. The spirit of grace. He calles it the spirit of grace, because of the effect, for as much as by him and his vertue, we inioy that grace which is offered vs in Christ. 1 For it is he that illuminates our vnderstandings by faith; 2 which seales vp our adoption in our hearts; 3 which regenerates vs into newnesse of life; 4 which ingrafts vs into the body of Christ, to the ende hee may liue in vs, and wee in him. He is rightly then called the spirit of grace, seeing by him Christ with all his benefits is made ours. Now it is too great and wicked an impietie, to despite him, who bestows vpon vs so many, and so excellent benefits. From this we may gather, that all those who willingly doe cause the spirit of God to become vnprofitable vnto them, which once they receiued; doe thereby reuile and despite him. Therefore wee are not to wonder if God doe so seuerely punish such sacriledges: we must not maruell if he stoppe his eares to those which haue trode vnder foote Christ the Mediatour, who only ob­taines for vs that which we neede: wee must not wonder if he shut vp the way of saluation to those who haue repulsed their only leader, which is the holy Ghost.

For we know him that hath said, vengeance belongeth vnto me, &c.] These two places are taken out of the 32. of Deut. 35. Now seeing Moses there promiseth that God will shew vengeance vpon them that haue wronged his people, it seemes that that which is there spoken of vengeance, is here improperly wrested to the matter in hand. For what should the Apostles drift now be? He saith that the impie­tie of those who haue mocked God, shall not goe vnpuni­shed. And S. Paul in the 12. to the Rom. 19. following the true meaning of this place of Moses, applies it to another ende. For exhorting vs to patience, he commands vs that we [...] [Page 232]them by another meanes. As often then as the troubles which we haue suffred for Christ shall come into our minds, let them bee so many goades in our sides to pricke vs for­ward to profit more and more.

Partly while ye were made, Vers. 33 &c.] We see to what manner of persons he speaketh, to wit, to such whose faith had been tried by no small experiences: and yet he ceaseth not to ex­hort them to greater things. Wherefore let no man deceiue himselfe through false flatteries, as if hee were come to the goale, or had no more need to be stirred vp by others. Now he saith that they were made gazing stockes by reproches, and afflictions, as if they had bin brought vpon scaffolds. Whence wee may gather that the persecutions which they endured were great. But we must diligently obserue the other mem­ber where he saith, they were made companions of the faith­full in their persecutions. For seeing the cause for the which al the faithfull do suffer, is the cause of Christ, yea & the com­mon cause of them all: therefore whatsoeuer one of them endures, the rest ought to beare the burthen with them, and to take it to heart as if they themselues did endure it. And truly thus wee must doe, vnlesse wee meane to separate our selues euen from Christ himselfe.

And suffered with ioy the spoyling of your goods.] Vers. 34 It is not to be doubted but the losse of their goods was cause of sor­row and heauines vnto them: for questionlesse they were men subiect to humane affections: but their sorrow was so tempered that it hindred not this ioy whereof the Apostle speakes. For as pouertie is reputed among aduersities; so no doubt the spoiling of their goods, considered in it selfe, was cause of sorrow and griefe vnto them: but looking higher by the eyes of faith, they conceiued occasion of ioy, where­by all the griefe which they had sustained was sweetened. For it behooueth that our senses bee thus turned from the world, when we behold the heauenly reward. Neither doe I say ought whereof the faithfull haue not experience. For the truth is, wee ioyfully receiue that which we are perswa­ded shall turne to our saluation. Now it is certaine, that the [Page 233]children of God haue this very feeling in the combates which they endure for the glorie of Christ. Wherefore, the affection of the flesh can neuer so ouerwhelme them with griefe, that they should not lift vp their mindes to heauen, and by this meanes enter into a spirituall ioy, as in the ex­ample of Steuen. And so much doth the reason which he af­terwards addes emport. Knowing (saith he) in your selues how that you haue in heauen, a better, and an enduring sub­stance. They then endured with ioy the spoyling of their goods, not because they tooke pleasure in being spoyled of them simply, but hauing their mindes directed to the re­compence, they easily forgat the griefe which they had con­ceiued in the feeling of the present euill. Those that haue a true taste of the heauenly riches, shall ne­uer be so ouer­whelmed vvith sorrow for the losse of the earthly but they will quiet­ly beare the same for the cause of Christ. And surely where the taste of heauenly riches beares rule, there neither the world nor all his allurements haue such sauour, that the fee­ling of pouertie or reproch can ouerwhelme the mindes of such with sorrow. Wherefore, if wee will patiently and ioy­fully beare all things for Christ, let vs accustome our selues to meditate vpon this felicitie often, in respect of which all the things of this world are but filth and dung. In the mean while we must not let that passe which hee saith, knowing in your selues. For whosoeuer shall not resolue himselfe in par­ticular, that the heritage which God hath promised to his children doth also appertaine vnto him, it shall profit such a one nothing at all to haue such a generall knowledge.

Cast not away therefore your confidence, &c.] Vers. 35 He sheweth what it is which doth principally confirme vs in perseue­rance: to wit, if we hold fast our confidence, because that if we cast that away, wee euen depriue our owne selues of the re­ward which is set before vs. Faith the foun­dation of an holy life. Whence it appeares that this confidence is the foundation of a good and an holy life. Whereas hee vseth the word of recompence, or reward, hee thereby diminisheth nothing from the free promise of sal­uation. For although the faithfull know that their labour shall not be in vaine in the Lord, yet notwithstanding they wholy rest themselues vpon the onely mercie of God. But wee haue elsewhere very often spoken sufficiently of this [Page 234]matter, Reward im­pungs free im­putation of righteousnes. to wit, how the name of reward doth nothing at all impung the free imputation of righteousnes.

36 For ye haue neede of patience, that after ye haue done the will of God, ye might receiue the promise.

37 For yet a very little while, and he that shall come, will come, and will not tarrie.

38 Now the iust shall liue by faith: but if any withdraw him­selfe, my soule shall haue no pleasure in him.

39 But we are not they which withdraw our selues vnto per­dition, but follow faith vnto the conseruation of the soule.

For ye haue neede of patience, Vers. 36 &c.] He saith that patience is necessarie, 1 not onely because wee must perseuere vnto the end, 2 but also because Satan hath innumerable meanes to trouble vs. Wherefore if wee were not fortified with an in­uincible patience, The necessitie of patience. our courage would quaile vs a thousand times, before wee should euer attaine to the middle of our course. True it is that the inheritance of eternall life is alrea­die assured vs: but because this our life is appointed vnto vs as a place for to runne our course in, wee must endeuour to attaine to the end thereof by patience. Now there are many stumbling blockes which present themselues before vs in our way, which will not onely offer to slacke our pace, but wholy to breake off our enterprises, vnlesse we be furnished with a marueilous constancie to resist, by buckling our selues to withstand them. Satan goes about it finely by lay­ing all sorts of incombrances in our way, to discourage vs. In a word, Christians shall neuer set two steps forward with­out wearines, if they be not supported by patience. Where­fore this is the onely meanes which makes vs to perseuere constantly. Otherwise, wee shall neither obey God, neither yet shall wee euer enioy the inheritance promised vnto vs, which hee here calleth the promise, according to the figure called Metonymia.

Yet a little while, Vers. 37 &c.] To the ende wee should not waxe faint with endeauouring, hee admonisheth vs that the time [Page 235]shall not be long. Now there is nothing more fit to put life and courage into vs, if at any time we faint, than when hope is giuen vs of a speedie and short issue. As if a Captaine or great man of warre should say to his souldiers, the ende of the warres are neere, if so be you fight lustely, euen a little while: so the Apostle admonisheth vs, that if we waxe not wearie, nor faint hearted, the Lord will come shortly, who will deliuer vs from all aduersities. Now to the ende the consolation might haue the greater waight and authoritie, he alleadgeth the testimonie of the Prophet Abacuk, chap. 2.4. But in regard he followed the Greeke translation, The text of A­bacuck expoū ­ded. hee straieth somewhat from the words of the Prophet. First of all I will recite them as they stand in the text of the Pro­phet, and after we will conferre them with that which the Apostle here recites. The Prophet hauing spoken of the hor­rible discomfiture of his nation, and beeing feared with his owne prophesie, could not see what way in the world to take, but gets himselfe as it were out of this world, and be­tooke himselfe to his watch tower. Now our watch tower is the word of god, by the which we are exalted vp into hea­uen. Beeing thus got into his tower, he receiues a comman­dement to write a new prophesie, by which the assurance of saluation might be brought to the faithfull. Notwithstan­ding because men are naturally importunate, and so hastie in their affections, that they euermore thinke that God is too slowe, what haste soeuer hee maketh; for this cause hee saith, that the promise shall come, and shall not tarrie. Though God hasten neuer so fast for our de­liuerance, yet we alwaies thinke him too long. Al­though he by and by addes, If it tarrie; waite: thereby signi­fying, that that which God promiseth cannot come so quickly, but we alwaies imagine it comes very late. As the auncient prouerb among the Latines imports: to wit, when we desire a thing, euen haste it selfe is slownesse. It follow­eth afterward, Behold he that lifteth vp himselfe, his soule shall not continue strong; but the iust shall liue by faith. By which words he testifies, that the vnfaithfull shall not re­maine firme and stable, let their forces and helpes be neuer so many in which they trust: because the true and stable life [...] [Page 238]helpe himselfe with the Greeke translation, which agreed very wel to the doctrine he handled heretofore: as also now he applies it thereunto very fitly. He warned them before to take heed, least in forsaking the Church, they did not there­withall at the last wholy estrange themselues from the faith and grace of Christ: now he shewes that they are called, yet in such wise as they ought neuer to withdraw themselues. And againe he makes an opposition betweene faith, and withdrawing: as also he opposeth the conseruing of the soule, against perdition. Let vs note then that this sentence also be­longs vnto vs. For if God hath shewed vs so great a fauour as to giue vs the light of his Gospel, euen to vs (I say) who by this meanes are called to saluation; ought we not to know that the ende of our vocation is to profit more and more in the obedience of God, endeauouring without cea­sing to approach neerer and neerer vnto him? Behold the true conseruation of the soule: for in thus doing, we escape e­ternall perdition.

CHAP. XI.

1 Now faith is the ground of things, which are hoped for, and the euidence of things which are not seene.

WHosoeuer made this the beginning of the eleuenth chapter, hath very vnfitly disioyned the scope and drift of the text. For the meaning of the Apostle is, to proue his former speech touching the necessitie of pati­ence. He alleadged the testimonie of Habacuck, who saith that the Iust shall liue by faith: now he shewes what remai­neth; to wit, That faith can no more be separate from pati­ence, than from it selfe. Thus stands the order of the words then, We shall neuer attaine to the end of our saluation, vn­lesse we be furnished with patience. For the Prophet affirms that the iust shall liue by faith. Now faith calles vs to things very farre off from vs, which wee doe not as yet inioy: it ne­cessarily [Page 239]then comprehends patience in it selfe. Thus then this proposition, That faith is a foundation, serues as the Mi­nor of the syllogisme: whereby also it appeares that they much deceiue themselues, who thinke this place to be a full definition of faith. For the Apostle speakes not here of the whole nature of faith, but hee made choice of a part fitting his purpose; to wit, that faith is alwaies ioined with patience. Let vs now come to the words. He calles it subsistance, or ground of things hoped for. It is euident that we hope not for that which we haue in our hands, but for those things which are yet hidden from our senses, or at least wise, the inioying whereof is deferred to another time. The Apostle then now teacheth the very same thing which S. Paul doth, Rom. 8.24. for hauing said, that we see not that which wee hope for, he inferreth thereupon, that we waite for it by patience. So our Apostle admonisheth vs that beleeue not God so much in regard of things present, as in regard of those things the expectation whereof is yet in suspence. Furthermore the ap­pearance of cōtradiction, which is in this speech, wants not his grace. Faith, saith he, is the foundatiō or possession wher­in wee haue alreadie set sure footing (for the Greeke word Hypostasis which he vseth, signifieth so much.) But of what things? of things absent, which are so farre off from beeing vnder our feete, that they do very much surmount the reach of our vnderstandings.

There is the same consideration in the second member, where he calles it the euidence, or certification of things which are not seene. For euidence, makes things to appeare; and commonly appertaines vnto those things onely which we feele and perceiue. Thus then at the first view these two things seeme to be contrarie, and yet notwithstanding they agree very well in this part of the definition of faith. For the spirit of God discouereth hidden things vnto vs, whereof there can no knowledge of them come vnto vs in regard of our naturall vnderstanding. For life eternall is promised vs, and yet in the meane time we die. We heare of the blessed resurrection, but yet for all that we are inuironed with rot­tennesse. [Page 240]We are pronounced iust: and yet notwithstanding sinne dwels still in vs. We heare that we are blessed: but yet are we thorowly bitten with hunger and thirst. God crieth with a lowd voyce that he will by and by assist vs: but yet it seemes when wee crie, that hee stoppeth his cares. What should we now doe in these cases, if we were not built vpon hope, and if in the middest of darknes our mindes did not lift themselues vp farre aboue al that which is in this world, hauing the word, and the Spirit of God for our guides to go before vs? Wherefore faith is well called a subsistence of those things which yet consist in hope, and the euidence of things not seene. Whereas S. Augustine doth sometimes translate the Greeke word Elenchus, which the Apostle here vseth, by a noune which commeth of the verbe To ouer­come, I doe not dislike it: for he doth faithfully expresse the Apostles meaning. But yet I had rather call it an euidence or shewing, because it is lesse constrained.

2 For by it our elders were well reported of.

3 Through faith wee vnderstand, Gen. 1.3. Ioh. 1.10. that the world was ordai­ned by the word of God, so that the things which we see, are not made of things that did appeare.

4 By faith Abel offered vnto God a better sacrifice than Cain, by the which hee obtained witnes that he was righteous, God testifying of his gifts: by the which faith also he being dead yet speaketh.

FOr by it, Vers. 2 &c.] He will entreate of this matter to the verie end of the chapter, to wit, that the ancient Fathers obtai­ned saluation by faith onely, and that they were no other­wise acceptable and wel-pleasing vnto God, but by it. The Iewes had some reason to reuerence their ancestors greatly: but yet a sottish and vnbridled admiration of them had so possessed their mindes, that it hindred them much from suf­fering themselues to bee wholy ruled vnder Christ his go­uernment; and this they were carried vnto, either by ambi­tion, or superstition; or both. For hearing that Abrahams [Page 241]seede was holy and blessed, they were so puffed vp with this title, that they looked rather vnto men, than vnto God. Moreouer, they had herewithall a stubborne and inconside­rate manner of imitation, because they considered not what it was that deserued imitation indeede in their Fathers. By this meanes they rested in the ancient ceremonies, as if all religion and perfection of holinesse had consisted in them. The Apostle confutes this error, and teacheth what was the chiefe and principall vertue in them, to the end their succes­sors might vnderstand how they might resemble their fore­fathers in truth. The Patriarkes had no other hand whereby they were knit vnto God but faith. Let vs remember then that the Apostles speciall and chiefe drift of his speech is, to shew that all the Fathers who from the beginning were approoued of God, were no otherwise conioyned with him but by faith: that so the Iewes might know that they had no other meane to bee allowed of God, and to bee knit in an holy vnitie with their Fathers, but by faith: so that as soone as they left faith, they by and by banished themselues from the Church, and were no longer accounted Abrahams lawfull children, but bastards.

By faith we vnderstand, &c.] Vers. 3 This is a very good proba­tion of the former sentence. For wee differ in nothing from brute beasts, if wee vnderstand not that the world was crea­ted by God. For to what purpose haue men reason and knowledge, but that they might confesse their Creator? Yet so it is that faith only causeth vs to know and acknowledge that God created the world: wherefore no marueile if faith bee accounted the chiefe vertue aboue all others in the an­cient fathers. But here a question may be demaunded, Question. why the Apostle affirmes that we vnderstand that by faith, which the Infidels themselues doe know. For the beholding of the heauens and the earth constraines the very wicked to acknowledge the maker of them. And S. Paul also by this condemnes all men as guiltie of ingratitude, because that when they knew God, they did not giue that honour which to him belonged, Rom. 1.21. And to say the truth, it had bin vnpossible that the feeling of religion should alwaies haue [...] [Page 244]word of God; next that they depend on nothing but vpon his free promises. In the first place he saith, that the sacrifice of Abel was not esteemed for any respect better than his brothers, but onely because it was sanctified by faith. For in very truth the fat of the beasts had no such sweete sauour, that God should bee appeased in respect thereof. The person of a man must be accepted, before his sacrifice can be allowed: who is accepted of God then but he whose heart is purged by faith? And the Scriptures doe shew sufficiently for what cause sacrifices were well pleasing vnto him: for these are the words of Moses, God had respect to Abel and to his gifts. From whence we may easily gather, that his sacrifices were accep­table vnto God, because he himself pleased God. And from whence came it that he pleased him, but because his heart was purged by faith.

God testifying of his gifts.] He confirmeth that which I haue said, to wit, that there comes no works from vs that are acceptable to God, till such time as wee our selues are recei­ued into fauour: or (to speake more briefly) no workes are reputed for iust before God, No vvorks are accounted for iust before God but those that proceed from a righteous man. but the workes of a righteous man. For see the argument of the Apostle; God testified of the gifts of Abel, by the which he obtained the praise of righteousnes before him. Now this is a profitable doctrine, and so much the more worthie to bee noted, because the truth of it cannot easily be perswaded vnto vs. For when we see some brightnes to shine, be it in any worke whatsoeuer, wee are suddenly rapt vp into an admiration of it, and wee thinke God cannot iustly reprooue it: but hee who onely lookes to the inward puritie of the heart, rests not at all in the outward visors of workes. Let vs learne then that no iust worke can proceede from vs, till such time as we be iustified our selues in the sight of God. He being yet dead. This he al­so attributes to faith, to wit, that God testified he had care of Abel after his death, as well as during the time of his life. For when he saith that he spake being yet dead, he signifies that which Moses recites: to wit, that God was moued by his cruell death to take vengeance of it. Whereas then it is said, that Abel, or his blood cried; both the one and the o­ther are figuratiue speeches. Now this was a singular testi­monie [Page 245]of the loue of God towards him, that he had a care of him after he was dead. And from hence it appeares that he is of the number of the Saints of God, whose death was pre­tious vnto him, as it is in the 115. Psalme, vers. 15.

5 By faith was Enoch translated, that he should not see death: Gen. 5.24. neither was he found: for God had translated him; for before he was translated, he was reported of, that he had pleased God.

6 Now without faith it is impossible to please God, for he that commeth to God must beleeue that God is, and that he is a rewarder of them that seeke him.

BY faith Enoch, &c.] Vers. 5 He makes choise but of a few of the ancients, to the end hee might make way to come the sooner to Abraham, and his posteritie. Enoch. He shewes that E­noch was translated by the meanes of faith. But first of all we must vnderstand the reason why God tooke him out of this world after such an extraordinarie manner. It was an excellent testimonie, whereby all men might know how greatly hee was beloued of God. For at that time impietie, and all manner of corruptions reigned euery where: if hee had died after the common manner of men, none would haue thought hee had been so presented by the prouidence of God, that hee should not be infected with the common contagion of the time: but in regard he was caught vp with­out dying, the hand of God did therein manifestly shew it selfe from heauen, by pulling him as it were out of the midst of the sire. It is no small signe of honour then you see which the Lord shewed him in this translating of him.

Now the Apostle affirmes that hee obtained this by faith. It is true indeed that Moses declares how he was a iust man, and one that walked with God: but for as much as faith is the beginning of righteousnes, therefore this loue of God towards him is rightly attributed to faith. As touching cu­rious questions wherewith curious heads are wont to in­tangle themselues, it is better to passe by them in silence. Curious que­stions are to be auoided. They aske forsooth what became of Enoch and Helias. And [...] [Page 248]ed with the feeling of his goodnesse, He that hath not a true taste of Gods good­nesse, wil neuer seeke to God, nor call vpon [...]im. hoping for saluation at his hand: for we either despise, or flie from God, if wee be­hold not saluation in him. Now let vs remember that wee must beleeue this, and not content our selues with a bare & naked opinion of it. For although the wicked, and vnbelee­uers doe sometimes conceiue something like vnto it, yet for all that they doe not therfore come vnto God, because they are not staied vpon a firme and steadfast faith: this is the se­cond part of faith, by which we obtaine fauour with God: to wit, when we are certainly perswaded that we haue salua­tion in him.

But many doe malitiously corrupt this second member, by drawing from it the merit of workes, and the confidence of meriting. Merit of works For see how they frame their argument: If wee be acceptable to God by faith, because we beleeue him to be a rewarder of them that seeke him: faith then (say they) hath respect to the merit of workes. But the onely way to ref [...]e this errour, The meanes how to seeke God. is to consider of the meanes by which we seeke God. For we must not bee so foolish to thinke wee seeke God, when wee erre from the right way of seeking him. Now the scripture assigneth this to be the meane and way to seeke God: 1 first, that a man be humbled in himselfe, and touched to the quicke by feeling himselfe guiltie of eternall death before God, 2 vtterly despairing of any helpe in himselfe: secondly, that such a one haue his refuge vnto Christ, as to the onely hauen of his saluation: for it is certain we cannot find in any place of scripture that we must bring any merit of workes vnto God, to get our selues into fa­uour with him. He therefore that shall well vnderstand this definition of seeking God, shall winde himselfe out of this difficultie. For reward is not to be referred to the dignitie or merit of workes, but to faith. Thus doe all the silly gloses of the Sophisters fal to the ground: By faith, say they, we please God, because by meriting (forsooth) we haue a purpose to please him But the Apostle would carrie vs higher than so: to wit, that the conscience might haue certaine assurance in it selfe, that it shall not loose the labour in seeking God. [Page 249]Which assurance farre surmounteth our capacitie, specially when euery man descendeth into the consideration of him­selfe. For we must not onely hold this generall proposition, Knowledge profits not, vn­lesse there be application. that God is the rewarder of them that seeke him: but euery mā must apply the profit & fruit of this doctrine to himself in particular: to wit, we must know that God respecteth vs, that he hath such a tender care of our saluation, as he will neuer suffer vs to perish: that he heareth our praiers, and will be our perpetuall & exceeding great reward. Now see­ing we can haue none of al this without Christ, it must needs follow of necessitie that our faith haue alwaies an eie vnto him, and that in him alone it is to rest and content it selfe. Faith must content it selfe in Christ alone.

Thus from these two members we may gather how, and wherefore it is impossible to please God without faith. For iustly doeth he hate vs all, seeing we euery one of vs are ac­cursed by nature: and as for any remedie to doe vs good in this case, we haue none at all in our selues. Wherefore it is necessarie that God preuent vs by his grace. Which he doth when we so acknowledge him to be God, that wee be not turned aside from him elsewhere by any peruerse superstiti­on: as also, when we promise our selues to haue assured sal­uation in him. Now if we would yet haue a more ample de­claration of this point, we must begin at this, to wit, that we shall neuer benefit our selues in any thing whatsoeuer wee expect or enterprise, vnlesse we looke vnto God. No other ende of liuing well, but to serue to Gods glorie. For there is none other ende of liuing well but to serue to his glorie: to which ende we shall neuer be able to attaine, vnlesse the knowledge of him goe before. This is indeed but the one halfe of faith, and would stand vs in no great stead, vnlesse confidence be ioyned therewithall. Wherefore, faith is then perfect and entire to obtaine vs fauour with God, when wee haue this setled confidence, that we secke him not in vaine, and when wee assure our selues of vndoubted saluation in him. Now who is he that will trust in God to be the rewar­der of his merits, vnlesse hee bee blinded with pride, and be­witched with a peruerse loue of himselfe? And therefore this confidence, or assurance whereof we speake, resteth it selfe [Page 250]onely vpon the free grace of God, and not vpon works, nei­ther vpon the proper dignitie of men. But seeing this grace of God is no where [...]o be found, but in Christ, there is none other but he to whom our faith must haue regard.

7 By faith Noah beeing warned of God of the things which were as yet not seene, Vers. 7 Gen. 6.13. mooued with reuerence, prepared the Arke to the sauing of his houshold, through the which Arke he con­demned the world, and was made heire of the righteousnesse, which is by faith.

THis was a singular example of vertue: Noah. to wit, that all the world beeing plunged in pleasures, and making themselues beleeue they should escape vnpunished, as if there had beene no iudgment of God to come vpon them, 1 that Noah alone should set before his eies the diuine ven­geance, 2 although it were yet to be deferred for a long time: besides, he trauelled wonderfully for the space of sixe score yeares to build an Arke: 3 he also continued firme and con­stant in the middest of so many mockes of the wicked. And, in the destruction of the whole world, hee doubted not but he should be saued; nay which more is, he assured himselfe of life euen in the very graue, that is to say, in the Arke. I do but lightly touch these things: euery one may better consi­der of further circumstances by himselfe. The Apostle at­tributes the praise of these so excellent and rare vertues vn­to faith. Hitherto hee hath intreated of the faith of the Fa­thers which liued vnder the first age of the world. But this was as a second birth of mankinde, when both Moah, and his familie exscaped the flood. Hence it followeth, that in what time soeuer men liued, yet they were no otherwise ap­prooued of God, neither did they euer any worke that was worthy of praise, but by faith. Let vs now see what the Apo­stle setteth before vs in the example of Noah to consider of: first, 1 that he beeing warned of God of the things which were yet not seene, 2 feared. Secondly, that he built an Arke: third­ly, 3 that he condemned the world by this building: lastly, that [Page 251]he was made heire of the righteousnes which is by faith. 4 The first thing which I noted, doth greatly expresse the vertue of faith. For it alwaies brings vs backe to this principle, that faith is the euidence of things not seene. And in very deede the nature and propertie of it is to behold in Gods word the things which are hidden, The nature of faith. and are farre distant from our sight. When he was admonished that the flood should come after an hundred and twentie yeeres; first of all the length of time might haue taken all feare away from him, and the thing it selfe also was incredible: In the meane time also he saw the wicked giue themselues ouer to all manner of plea­sures without any care of God at al: In a word, a man might haue thought that this terrible newes of the flood was no­thing else but a vaine scarre-crow. But Noah bare such re­uerence to the word of God, that turning his eyes from be­holding of things present, he so feared the ruine wherewith­all God had threatned the world, as if it had beene pre­sent.

The faith then which he had in the word of God framed him to that obedience, by which he gaue a testimonie in the building of the Arke. Obiection. But some make a question here why the Apostle makes faith the cause of feare, seeing faith hath respect rather to the promises of grace, than to the threat­nings: by reason whereof Saint Paul calles the Gospell (by which the righteousnes of God is offered vs vnto saluation) the word of faith, Rom. 10.8: It seemes then it is an impro­per speech to say, that faith moued Noah to reuerence. Answere. I an­swere, that properly faith springs out of the promises; that it is built vpon them; The true obiect of faith. that they are rightly and truly her obiect: and therefore wee say that Christ is the true obiect of faith, in whose person the heauenly Father is mercifull vnto vs, and in whom are sealed vp, and confirmed, all the promises of saluation. How faith is said to be the cause of feare And yet notwithstanding this is no hindrance why faith should not looke vnto God, and that it should not with reuerence receiue whatsoeuer hee com­mandeth. Or if wee will haue it in fewer words, The nature of faith is to heare God speake, and without any doubting [Page 252]at al to receiue whatsoeuer proceeds out of his holy and sa­cred mouth. Faith then you see is no lesse subiect to ye com­mandements and threatnings, than it is to the free promi­ses. But because we are neuer touched as we should, and as neede requireth with the commandements of God to yeeld him that obedience he requireth, neither yet mooued by his threatnings to seeke by prayers, to preuent, and turne away his wrath, vnlesse wee haue first apprehended the promises of grace, VVhy the Gos­pell is called the vvord of faith. Rom. 10.8. so as wee can boldly acknowledge God to be our mercifull Father and the author of our saluation: for this cause the Gospell is called, as of the principall part of it, the word of faith: and thus wee doe put a mutuall relation, or correspondencie, between faith and the Gospell. Yet how­soeuer faith in some things doe looke directly to the pro­mises of God: so also doth she no lesse looke vnto the threatnings, so farre foorth as is necessarie for vs to be led to the feare and obedience of God.

To the sauing of his household.] He here sheweth the obe­dience of Noah, which issueth from faith, as water from a fountaine. The building of the Arke was both a long work, and of great labour: he might haue been hindred, yea a thousand times might this worke haue been broken off, had there been no other impediments than the scoffes & mocks of the wicked: for no doubt they came running vpon this holy personage from euery coast to gaze at this strange building. Whereas then hee did thus constantly beare all their outragious and proud assaults, he shewed that he had a wonderfull power wrought in his affections to obey. But whence came it that he so constantly obeyed God, but that he had before rested in the promise which gaue him good hope of safetie, and that he should perseuere in this confi­dence vnto the end? For it had been impossible for him, of his owne free will to haue endured so many troubles; to haue ouercome so many hindrances, and to endure so con­stant in his purpose, Faith the mo­ther of obe­dience. vnlesse faith had gone before. Faith then is the onely mistris, or mother of obedience: whence wee may gather on the contrarie, that infidelitie is the onely let [Page 253]that keepeth vs from obeying of God. Infidelitie only hinders obe­dience. And at this day the incredulitie of the world doth manifest it selfe in this re­spect after a very fearefull manner, to wit, in that there is so little obedience.

By which he condemned the world.] If we say that Noah cō ­demned ye world because he was saued, referring this word by the which, to his safetie, it should be too constrained a sense: again, that it should be vnderstood of faith, the scope of the text will hardly suffer it: wee must therefore vnder­stand it of the Arke. Now it is said that he condemned the world by the Arke for two causes. 1 For in that he was so long time occupied in building the Arke, this tooke away all ex­cuse from the reprobates: and the euent which followed, 2 shewed that the destruction of the world was iust. For why was the Arke the safegard of saluation to this one familie, but that the wrath of the Lord spared this holy personage, In what sense Noah is said to condemne the vvorld. to the end he should not perish with the wicked? Where­fore if he and his familie had not been preserued as a little remnant, the condemnation of the world had not been so euident. In that Noah then obeyed the commandement of God, he by his example condemned the obstinacie of the world: And in that he was so miraculously deliuered from the gates of death, it was an instructiō that the whole world was iustly destroyed, the which God would doubtlesse haue saued, if it had not been vnworthie of so great a mercie. And was made heire of that righteousnes which is by faith. This is the last thing which the Apostle would haue vs to ob­serue in the person of Noah. Faith the roote and cause of righteousnes. Moses telleth how he was a iust man: the Apostle testifieth that faith was the roote, and the cause of this his iustice, or righteousnesse. The which is true, not onely because a man will neuer yeeld him­selfe in truth, and vnfainedly obedient to God, vnlesse he be first setled vpon the promises of his fatherly good will, con­fidently beleeuing that himselfe, and all his actions are ac­ceptable vnto him: but also because the life of a man, be it neuer so holie, if it once come to be examined according to the strict rule of Gods iustice, can in no wise be wel-pleasing in his sight without remission of sinnes. You see then it is [Page 254]necessarie that righteousnesse be grounded and vpheld by faith.

8 By faith Abraham, Gen. 12.4. when he was called, obeyed God, to goe out into a place, which he should afterward receiue for inhe­ritance, and he went out, not knowing whither he went.

9 By faith he abode in the land of promise, as in a strange countrie, as one that dwelt in tents, with Isaak and Iacob heires with him of the same promise.

10 For he looked for a citie hauing a foundation, whose buil­der and maker is God.

11 Through faith Sara also receiued strength to conceiue seede, Gen. 17.19. & 21.2. and was deliuered of a child when she was past age, because she iudged him faithfull which had promised.

12 And therefore sprang thereof one, euen of one which was dead, so many as the starres of the skie in multitude, and as the sand of the sea shore which is innumerable.

Abraham. HE comes now to speake of Abraham: who was the principall father of the Church of God vpon earth: of whose name the Iewes boasted, as if by this onely title they had been exempt out of the common order of men, because they were descended from his holy stocke and linage. Now hee shewes them what they ought especially to haue, if they would bee reputed among the children of Abraham: and by this meanes brings them to faith: because euen A­braham himselfe had nothing worthie of praise, but that which proceeded from thence. 1 First, he teacheth that faith was the cause that he so suddenly obeyed God, when he was commanded to goe out of his countrie. 2 Secondly, that by meanes of the same faith he continued constant in his voca­tion vnto the end. Two trials of faith. By these two testimonies was the faith of Abraham cleerely proued: first, by his readines to obey: se­condly, by his constancie in perseuering. Being called. The ancient Latin Translator and Erasmus referre this to the name: which should bee a very colde and sillie sense. For mine owne part I had rather expound it of the oracle, by [Page 255]which Abraham was called to goe out of his countrie: for he banished himselfe out of the same in such sort, that yet in the meane while he did nothing without the commande­ment of God. And in very truth, A principle of faith. it is one of the principles of faith, that wee mooue not so much a foote, vnlesse Gods word goe before to shew vs the way; nor vnlesse it giue vs light as a lanterne: as Dauid saith, Psal. 119.105. Wherefore let vs learne to obserue this all our life long: that wee take nothing in hand, but accordingly as we are called thereunto of God.

To come to the place which he should afterward take for an inheritance.] With the commandement he had a promise, that God would giue him the land for an inheritance: he by and by embraced this promise, and was no lesse ioyfull of it, than if he had been put into present possession of it. Be­hold a singular proofe of faith. First, Another triall of faith. to forsake that we haue in hand, as they say: secondly, to goe seeke things which are very farre off from vs, and altogether vnknowne vnto vs. For when God commanded him to goe foorth, he assig­ned him no certaine place where it was his pleasure hee should inhabite, but left his minde perplexed, and in sus­pence. Come (saith he) to the place which I will shew thee. Wherefore did he deferre to shew him the place, but to the end his faith should be more and more exercised? Gen. 12.1 Againe, the loue of his owne countrie might not only haue slacked Abrahams readines, but also wholy haue locked vp his heart from going out of his house. His faith then was excellent, seeing it brake through all difficulties, and did thus flie to the place whither the Lord called it.

By faith he remained, &c.] This is the second member, Vers. 9 to wit, that hee being entred into the promised land, could hardly finde entertainment therein as a stranger. Where was this inheritance which he hoped for? Truly he might forth­with haue thought that God had deceiued him: and might haue had a greater occasion than the former to nourish this thought (which the Apostle omitteth) to wit, because by and by after, famine did driue him thence: so as hee was twice [Page 256]constrained to flee into the land of Gerar. But the Apostle contents himself to commēd his perseuerance in one word, in saying that he was as a stranger in the land of promise. For the condition of a stranger was contrarie to the promise. When Abraham then constantly sustained this tentation, it was an excellent vertue in him, but yet such as proceeded from no other cause than faith. With Isaak and Iacob. His meaning is not that they dwelled together in the same tents or in one time, but he makes Abraham a companion with his sonne, and his sonnes sonne, because they were trauel­lers in the heritage which was promised to them: and yet fainted not, although God made them waite a long time. For by how much the more their hope was deferred, by so much the more their tentations increased, if they had not manfully repulsed all the doubts and assaults by the buck­ler of faith.

For he looked for a citie, Verse 10 &c.] He giues a reason wherefore he attributes their perseuerance vnto faith: to wit, because they looked vnto heauen: and this was to see those things which yet were not to be seene. For although it was to their great commendation that they had alreadie entertained the assurance of the promise into their hearts which God had made vnto them of enioying the land, so as after some good space of time, the thing should be accomplished and giuen them indeede: yet in that they did not wholy stay themselues in the hope of that onely, but pearced euen vnto heauen it selfe, in this they did shew yet a more cleere and euident marke of their faith. He calles heauen a citie that hath a foundation, because it shall endure for euer, whereas there is nothing in this world that is not earthly and transi­torie. But this manner of speech may seeme absurd, when he makes God to bee the creator of heauen; as if hee had not created the earth also. I answer, that because in earthly buil­dings, besides the matter, there is also the hand and mens industries, therefore the workmanship of God is not oppo­sed to them in this place amisse. For whatsoeuer is built of men, tastes of the instabilitie of those that made it: as on the [Page 257]contrarie, the perpetuitie of the heauenly life agrees to the nature of him who is the builder of it, to wit, God. Further­more, to the end that we neuer waxe wearie in following God, the Apostle teacheth that all encombrances are light­ned by waiting for this heauenly life.

By faith Sara also, &c.] Vers. 11 To the end women may know and vnderstand that this doctrine is no lesse common vnto them than vnto men, he brings in the example of Sara, Sara. VVomen haue interest in the matter of eter­nall life, as well as men. the whom he notes out before all others, because shee is the mother of all the faithfull. But it is wonderfull that her faith is commē ­ded, seeing shee is manifestly conuicted of infidelitie; for shee laughed at the word of the Angel, Obiection. as if it had beene a fable, Gen. 18.12. Her laughing was not by way of admira­tion: for if it had, shee should not haue beene so sharpely re­prooued of the Angel. It must bee confessed, Answers. that her faith was mingled with infidelitie: Faith commē ­ded, though it were mingled with distrust. but because shee corrected her distrust after shee was admonished, shee is notwithstanding that, allowed of God, and her faith commended. Whereas then at the first shee reiected this message of the Angel, as a thing incredible, yet as soone as shee vnderstood that it proceeded from the mouth of God, shee receiued it in obe­dience. And from hence we gather a very profitable do­ctrine, that howsoeuer our faith doe somewhat wauer and halt, yet it ceaseth not for all that to be approoued of God; Distrust must not be nouri­shed. prouided that we let not loose the raines to distrust. Now the summe is, that the miracle which God did when Isaack was begotten, was the fruite of the faith of Abraham and his wife, by which they apprehended and felt the power of God

Because shee iudged him faithfull that had promised.] These reasons are to be diligently obserued, which doe expresse the vertue and nature of faith. If a man should onely heare that Sara conceiued by faith, he should not yet vnderstand all: but this exposition which the Apostle addeth, takes away all difficultie. For he saith, that Saraes faith consisted in this, that shee iudged God to be faithfull; and that in his promises: which sentence containes two members. For first wee are [...] [Page 260]with so many helpes? Obiection. If any man obiect, that they could not beleeue, vnlesse they receiued the promises whereupon it was necessarie faith should be founded: Answere. I answer, this is spo­ken by comparison. For they were farre off that degree, to which God hath now exalted vs. Wherefore, howsoeuer they had the selfe same promise of saluation with vs, yet notwithstanding, they had not that same clearenesse of the promises, which wee now inioy vnder the kingdome of Christ; but contented themselues to behold them afarre off.

Confessing that they were pilgrimes, and strangers.] Iacob confessed this, when he answered Pharoah, that the daies of his pilgrimage were fewe and euill, in respect of the pere­grination of his fathers; as also that these his daies were full of many euils, Gen. 47.9. If Iacob acknowledged himselfe to be a stranger in that land which was promised him as a perpetuall inheritance, it thereby appeares, that he was not of this world; If the Fathers vnder the law who were com­passed about with so many darke clouds, did notwith­standing aspire vnto heauen: hovv much more ought vve, to vvhom Christ novv reacheth his hand to dravv vp thither? but did set his affections on things that were farre aboue in the heauens. And therefore the Apostle infers that the Fathers did euidently shew by this their manner of speech, that they had a better countrie in heauen. For if they were strangers and pilgrimes, then had they another coun­trie wherein they had a certaine dwelling. Now if these men in the mids of so many darke clouds, did yet in spirit soare euen vnto the heauenly countrie, what ought we to doe at this day, wee I say, to whom Christ doeth so apparantly stretch forth his hand from heauen, to lift vs vp thither? If the land of Canaan could not keepe them backe; how much more ought we to stand vpon our deliuerance, & freedome; we (I say) to whome there is no certaine abode promised in this world?

And if they had beene mindefull, Vers. 15 &c.] He preuents an obie­ction which might bee made to the contrarie: to wit, that they were therefore strangers, because they had left their country. The Apostle replies, surely, when they called them­selues strangers, they thought not of Mesopotamia, for if they had beene desirous thereof, it remained still in their power to haue returned backe againe. But they banished [Page 261]themselues from thence of their own accord: and which more is, they renounced it, as though it did nothing at all appertaine vnto them. They meant another countrie then, which was out of this world.

Wherefore God is not ashamed to call them, &c.] Vers. 16 He hath re­spect vnto that sentence, I am the God of Abraham, the God of Isaac, and the God of Iacob, Exod. 3.6. Truely it is no small honour, when God makes himselfe famous, as it were, with the names of men also when by this marke he wil be discer­ned (as you would say) from Idols. The Apostle shewes that this priuiledge was also founded vpon faith, because that as the holy Fathers aspired vnto the heauenly countrie; so God also for his part held them to be of the number of his citi­zens. But we must gather from hence that we haue no place among the children of God, vnlesse we renounce the world: VVe shall haue no inheritance in heauen, vn­lesse we count our selues strangers in the earth. as also that we shal haue no inheritance in heauē, vnlesse we be strangers on earth. Furthermore, from these words, I am the God of Abraham, of Isaack, and of Iacob, the Apostle rightly gathereth that they are heires of heauen: because God is not the God of the dead, but of the liuing.

17 By faith Abraham offered vp Isaack, Gen. 22.10. when he was tri­ed, and he that receiued the promises offered his onely begotten Sonne.

18 (To whom it was said, Gen. 21.12. In Isaack shall thy seede bee called.)

19 For he considered that God was able to raise him vp euen from the dead: from whence he receiued him also after a sort.

20 By faith Isaack blessed Iacob & Esau concerning things to come.

21 By faith Iacob when he was a dying, blessed both the sonnes of Ioseph, and leaning on the ende of his staffe, worship­ped God.

22 By faith Ioseph when he died made mention of the de­parting of the children of Israel, and gaue commandement of his bones.

[...] [Page 264]quicke, yet were they all but flea bitings in regard of this tentation, to wit, that hauing receiued the promises, hee is then commanded to put his sonne Isaak to death. For al the promises were founded vpon this, In Isaak shall thy seede be called, Gen. 21.12: so that this being taken away, there remained vnto him no more hope of blessing, or of grace. The question is not here then as touching any earthly mat­ter, but of Abrahams eternall saluation, yea of the salua­tion of the whole world. How many, and how great angui­shes of minde thinke we was this good personage cast into, when it came into his heart that with the losse of his sonnes life, the hope of eternall saluation should be cleane cut off and extinguished? And yet notwithstanding by faith hee went on valiantly (ouercomming all these thoughts) to put that in execution which was commanded him of God. If this his constancie deserues the title of an admirable vertue, thus to hold out in the middest of so many hard incumbran­ces, then doubtlesse that faith which onely was the cause that made Abraham thus constantly to perseuere, must of necessitie deserue to carrie away the prize.

But hereof ariseth no small difficultie: Obiection. how should A­brahams faith be thus highly cōmended, seeing he forsooke the promise? For as it is true that obedience springs from faith, so also is it as true that faith springs out of the pro­mise. Abraham then being destitute of the promise, his faith also must needes vanish. But the death of Isaak (as we haue alreadie said) was as a cleane extinguishing of all the pro­mises. For Isaak must not now bee considered as a priuate person among others, but as he in whose loynes Christ was inclosed. Answere. The Apostle himselfe giues vs the solution to this question, which would otherwise be somwhat difficult: ad­ding by and by that Abraham gaue God this honour, to to wit, Vers. 19 he thought him able to raise vp his sonne againe euen from the dead. Therefore he reiected not the promise that was made vnto him, but did extend the truth and vertue thereof farre aboue the life of his sonne, because hee limited not the power of God within so narrow a compasse, as to [Page 265]thinke that Isaak being dead, How Abraham may be said to hope aboue hope. that also should therefore be bound, or quenched. By this meanes he kept the promise still, because hee tied not the power of God to the life of Isaak, but had this certaine perswasion, that it would shew it selfe no lesse powerful euen in his dead ashes, than in quick­ning and restoring his life againe.

From whence he recouered him after a sort.] As if he should say, this hope did not deceiue Abraham. For it was as a kind of resurrection, when Isaak was thus deliuered out of the middest of the shadow of death. The Greeke word Para­bole, which wee translate figure, or similitude, is interpreted diuers waies by the expositors. For mine owne part, I take it simply for a word of similitude, as, either after a sort, or such a like speech. For howsoeuer Isaak was not raised vp in very deede, yet notwithstanding he seemed after a sort to be raised vp, when hee was suddenly and miraculously deli­uered by such an vnexpected fauour of God. Yet I reiect not that which others thinke, to wit, that our flesh which is subiect to death, is shadowed out in the ramme which was put in the place of Isaak. I confesse that to bee true also which others teach, that the image of Iesus Christ was pain­ted foorth in this offring. But I speake now of that which the Apostle meant to say, and not of all things that might rightly be gathered. Now in my iudgement, the true sense is, that Abraham recouered his sonne, euen as if he had been giuen him from death into a new life.

By faith Isaak blessed, &c.] This also was a worke of faith, Vers. 20 to giue a blessing concerning things to come. Isaak. For whereas the thing is not yet effected, but the naked word onely ap­peares, there faith must needes be said to reigne. But in the first place wee are to obserue what good vse this blessing had of which he speakes. For to blesse, is generally taken to pray that good may come to those for whom we pray. But there was another thing rather in the blessing of Isaak; for it was as if he had put the person of his sonne Iacob into the possession of that land which God had promised to him, and to his heires. But what of all this? Surely he had nothing [Page 266]in this land but the right of buriall. These high words then, Let peoples obey thee, and let the nations doe thee seruice, seeme to be ridiculous, Gen. 27.29. For what authoritie was he able to giue another, who was scarcely free there him­selfe? We see then that this blessing is grounded vpon faith, because Isaak had nothing to giue his sonnes but the word of God. Obiection. Yet notwithstanding some may doubt whether there were any faith in the blessing of Esaw, seeing he was a reprobate, and reiected of God. Answere. The solution is easie, be­cause faith did chiefly shew it self in this, when he discerned between the two twins begotten of him, & that in such sort that he gaue the first place to the lesser. For in gouerning himselfe according to the oracle of God, he took away from the eldest the ordinarie right of nature. Now the condition of the whole nation depended vpon this, that Iacob was the elect of God, and this election was ratified and confirmed by the blessing of the father.

By faith Iacob when he was a dying, Vers. 21 &c.] The purpose of the Apostle is, Iacob. to attribute whatsoeuer came to passe amōgst this people and was worthie of memorie, vnto faith: not­withstanding, because it had been a thing too long to recite euery particular example, hee chuseth out some amongst many: as this which hee now reciteth. For the tribe of E­phraim did so surmount the others, that they were in a man­ner hidden vnder his shadow. For the Scripture often com­prehends the tenne tribes vnder this name of Ephraim: and yet notwithstanding Ephraim was the yonger of the two sons of Ioseph. When as Iacob blessed him and his brother; they were both of them then children. What did Iacob see in the yonger that he should preferre him before the elder? nay at that time when he did it, his eyes were euen dimmed by reason of age: and whereas hee put his right hand vpon the head of Ephraim, surely it was not by chance or at ad­uenture: for he crossed his armes, so as he put his right hand vpon the left side. Moreouer, he assignes two portions vnto him, as if he had bin Lord already of that land from whence famine had driuen Iacob. There was nothing here therefore [Page 267]which was agreeable to reason; but faith, The Iewes de­spise faith, and yet it was the chiefest vertue their ancestors had. who onely was the gouernesse in this action. If the Iewes therefore would bee any thing indeede, let them boast of nothing but of faith.

And worshipped towards the end of his staffe.] This is one of the places by which we may coniecture that the Hebrues in old time had not the vse of prickes or points. For the Greekes could not so farre deceiue themselues, that they should turne Rodd, for Bedd, if there had been at that time such a manner of writing as there is now at this day. There is no doubt but Moses speaks of the bolster of the bed when he saith, Al Rosch Hamitthah. But the Greeke translators haue turned it, The end of his staffe, as if it had been there Matthaeh. The Apostle is not nice to applie that vnto his purpose which was commonly receiued. True it is that hee wrote to the Iewes: but it was to them which were disper­sed in diuers regions, and had changed their mother tongue into the Greeke. Now we know that the Apostles were not so precise in this respect, but did willingly apply them­selues to the weake who had yet neede of milke. Neither is there any danger in it, prouided that the readers be alwaies brought backe to the pure and natiue reading which the Scripture vseth. Now for the thing it selfe, there is no great difference. For Iacobs worshipping was a signe of giuing of thankes: wherefore he was led by faith to submit himselfe vnto his sonne.

Ioseph. By faith Ioseph when he died, &c.] Vers. 22 This which the Apostle now recites is the last of all the acts of the Patriarkes: which in very truth is well worthie to be put in writing. For doubt­lesse it was a token of an excellent faith, that all these riches, pleasures and honours could not cause this holy personage to forget the promise of God. For from whence is it that he had such a constancie of minde as to despise all that which was in high account here in this world, and yt he esteemed nothing of all that which was precious in it, but because he ascended into heauen by faith? As touching that which he commandeth for carrying his bones thence, it was not be­cause [...] [Page 270]thereby drawne vnto faith. But now let vs see what the things are which he praiseth in the faith of Moses. First of all he saith, 1 that being come to age, he had this vertue of faith, to refuse to be called the adopted sonne of Pharohs daugh­ter. He makes mention of his age, because if he had done it beeing a childe, it might haue beene imputed either to lightnesse, or ignorance. For in regard there is no reason nor counsell in children, they expose themselues to their owne hurt altogether at randon: And yong men also are often car­ried hither and thither by an inconsiderate heat of blood. To the end therefore we might know that Moses did no­thing vnwisely, or what he had not forethought himselfe of long before, the Apostle telleth vs that he was now at mans state: the which we may also clearly perceiue by the history.

Now it is said, that he refused the adoption of Pharaohs daughter: 1 first, because when he went to visit his brethren, he endeauoured to succour them: 2 Secondly, he reuenged their wrōgs: al which things tended to this end, to shew that he rather desired to returne to them of his own nation, than to continue in the court of the king. This was as much then as if of his owne free motion he had willingly reiected all. The Apostle attributes this vnto faith, because it had beene better for him in respect of outward things, to haue remai­ned in Egipt; but he was perswaded that the stocke of A­braham was blessed: of the which blessing the onely bare promise of God bare witnesse. The commen­dation of Mo­ses faith. For he saw no testimonie thereof before his eies, neither yet any thing neere vnto it. Whence it appears, that he beheld that by faith, which was farre remooued from his sight.

Esteeming the rebuke of Christ, Vers. 26 &c.] Wee must diligently obserue this phrase of speech, for by it we are taught to flie from all that which we cannot obtaine without offending of God, as from a deadly poyson. For he calles the pleasures of sinne, all the allurements of the world which doe turne vs away from God, and from that vocation to which he hath called vs. For those earthly commodities that respect this life, which yet with a good conscience, and by the permissi­on [Page 271]of God we may enioy; are not comprehended in this number: wherefore let vs alwaies remember to discerne what God permits vs as lawfull. Notwithstanding there are many things which of themselues are lawfull; the vse whereof is forbidden vs in regard of circumstance of time, place; or for some other respects. And therefore we must al­waies consider this in all the commodities of this present life, to wit, that they serue vs as helpes, and furtherances to follow God, and not as lets and hindrances.

He calles the delights of sinne temporarie, because they doe incontinently vanish away with the life. And against them he sets the rebuke of Christ, which all the faithfull ought wil­lingly to receiue into their bosomes. For whom God hath chosen, Rom. 8.29. them hath he also predestinate to be made like vn­to the image of his sonne. Not that he exerciseth them all alike with the same reproches, or with the same kinde of crosse; but because all ought to be so disposed, that they re­fuse not to be companions with Christ in bearing of the crosse. Let euery one of vs then consider with himselfe wher­vnto he is called by this communion; to the ende he may cut off all impediments and difficulties. For we must not lightly passe it ouer, that he calls all the disgraces which the faithfull haue endured from the beginning of the world, by the title of the rebukes of Christ. Because euen as they were members of one selfe same bodie with vs, so also were they in nothing seperated from vs. True it is, that all anguishes encombrances, as they are the rewards of sinne; so are they also fruites of that malediction which was imposed vpon the first man: but all the wrongs which we endure of the wicked for the name of Christ, are reputed of him as his owne: and for this cause S. Peter reioyceth that he in his flesh did fulfill that which was wanting of the afflictions of Christ. Col. 1.24. And if we consider of this as we ought, it shall not be so grieuous nor painefull vnto vs, to suffer and indure for Christ.

Where he saith, that he chose rather to suffer afflictions with the people of god, by that mēber he yet better signifies vnto vs [...] [Page 274]but he was farre off from seeing God such as he was indeed. The Apostle therefore meaneth that Moses was no lesse imboldened, than if beeing rauished vp into heauen he had set God onely before his eies: or as hauing nothing to doe with men, neither beeing subiect vnto the perils of this present life, he went on manfully as if hee had not beene to fight with Pharaoh. Yet notwithstanding, it is very certaine, that he was sometimes couered ou [...]r with so many difficul­ties, as they made him thinke in his minde that God was farre off from him: or at the least, that the obstinacie of the king furnished with so many helps to resist, Moses faith vvas often mingled with the infirmities of the flesh. should ouer­come him in the ende. To be short, God did shewe himselfe in such wise to Moses sight, as yet in the meane while hee left place for faith: but Moses beeing enuironed on eue­ry side with all those feares which pressed vpon him at his heeles, yet turned his minde, and all his senses to God. True it is, that this vision wherof we haue spoken did greatly aide him to this businesse: but yet he saw more in God, than the sight of this visible signe could helpe him vnto. For he ap­prehended his power, which was sufficient to swallow vp al feares and dangers. For resting himselfe vpon the promise, he held it for certaine that the people were already Lords of the promised land, The nature of faith descri­bed. howsoeuer they were now oppressed vnder the tyrannie of the Egyptians. From hence we gather, first, 1 that it is the true nature of faith to set God alwaies be­fore our eies. 2 Secondly, that faith regardeth things more high, and hidden in God, than those which our senses are a­ble to comprehend. 3 Thirdly, that the onely beholding of God is sufficient to correct our tendernesse, and to make vs to be more hard then stones or iron to beate backe all the assaults of Satan. Whence it followes, that by how much the more a man is delicate and effeminate, so much the lesse is his faith.

28 Through faith he ordained the Passeouer, Exod 12.22. and the effu­sion of blood, least he that destroyed the first borne, should touch them.

[Page 275] 29 By faith they passed through the red sea as by drie land, Exod. 14.22. which when the Egyptians assaied to doe, they were swallowed vp.

30 By faith the walles of Iericho fell downe after they were compassed about seuen daies. Iosh. 6.20. Iosh. 6.23. & 2.1.

31 By faith the harlot Rahab perished not with them which obeyed not, when she had receiued the spies peaceably.

BY faith he ordained, &c.] Vers. 28 This also ought to serue much for the recommendation of faith vnto the Iewes, be­cause they hold this sacrifice of the Passeouer for the most excellent of al others, and haue it in greatest reuerence. Now euen this so excellent a sacrifice he saith was celebrated by faith: not so much because this Lambe was a figure of Christ, as in regard that when hee sprinkled the two doore posts with the blood; the fruit thereof did not yet appeare. Wherefore, seeing the truth was hidden from him, it was needfull that he should waite for it by faith. And yet which more is, it might seeme a plain mockerie that Moses should oppose a few drops of blood as a remedie against the ven­geance of God: but he contenting himselfe with the onely word of God, doubted not but the people should be deli­uered from the plague which was neere at hand to ceaze vpon the Egyptians. It is not without cause therefore you see that the Apostle commends his faith in this behalfe. Those who expound that the Passeouer was celebrated by faith, because Moses looked vnto Christ; doe say very true: but the Apostle makes mention simply of faith here, be­cause it rested in the word of God alone, when as yet the fruite appeared not. Away with curious speculations there­fore, for wee haue nothing to doe with them in this place. Where he saith, that Moses onely ordained the Passeouer, the reason is; because God ordained it by his hand.

By faith they passed through the red sea, &c.] Vers. 29 It is very cer­tain that there were many vnbeleeuers amōg this so great a multitude: but the Lord granted this to ye faith of a few, that the whole flocke did thus passe through ye red sea drie shod. [...] [Page 278]we might know that the spies came secretly into the citie of Iericho, and that in the same they were hid in the house of an harlot. Although it is certaine that this is referred to her life past: because her faith giues testimonie of her repen­tance.

32 And what shall I more say? Iudg. 6.11. & [...].6 & 13.24 & 11.1. & 12.7. for the time would be too short for me to tell of Gedeon, of Barac, and of Sampson, and of Iephte, also of Dauid, and Samuel, and of the Prophets:

33 Which through faith subdued kingdomes, wrought righ­teousnes, obtained the promises, stopped the mouthes of lions,

34 Quenched the violence of fire, escaped the edge of the sword, of weake were made strong, waxed valiant in battell, tur­ned to flight the armies of the aliants:

35 The women receiued their dead raised to life: other also were racked and would not be deliuered, that they might receiue a better resurrection.

ANd what shall I say more?] Vers. 32 Fearing least if hee should stand to reckon vp euery particular example, he might thereby restraine the praises of faith but to a very few; hee breaks off, and saith, I should neuer make an end, if I should recite all of them one by one; seeing those few which hee hath alreadie mentioned, may bee extended to the whole Church of God. And first he notes the time which was be­tweene Ioshuah and Dauid, during the which God raised vp Iudges to gouerne his people: which were these foure whereof he makes mention, to wit, Gedeon, Barac, Sampson, and Iephte. Gedeon. As concerning Gedeon; was it not a thing ridi­culous in the eyes of flesh and blood, that he should goe to assaile an infinite armie of enemies, with three hundred men onely? and what was the breaking of the pitchers in their hands? Surely a very fond thing, fit in all reason to serue to fray little children onely. In like manner the forces that Ba­rac had, Barac. were farre inferiour to the strength of his enemies: and besides, he was onely gouerned by the counsell of a sil­lie weake woman. Sampson. Sampson being but a countrie man, and [Page 279]exercised in no other weapons than with tillage and hus­bandrie; what was such a one able to doe, think you, against so proud conquerours, that hee should bring all the people into subiection vnto him by his power? And as for Iephte, Iephte. who would not euen at the first haue condemned his enter­prise of rashnes, seeing he promised to maintaine a people, where their state was in a manner remedilesse? But because all these personages followed the calling, and leading of God, and rested themselues vpon his promise, executing the charge that was enioyned them, they all doe receiue their due commendation by the testimonie of the holy Ghost. So then, whatsoeuer they did which deserued praise, Imperfections are in the best. that the Apostle attributes to faith: although there was not one of them whose faith wauered not. Gedeon was too too back­ward to take armes; and durst not commit himselfe vnto God, but with great difficulties. Barac was so timerous and fearefull euen from the beginning, that hee was inforced to do his dutie by Debora, and that not without some disgrace vnto him. Sampson, ouercome by the flatteries of his con­cubine, did vndiscreetly betray both his owne and the peo­ples safetie. Iephte being too rash in vowing his foolish vow, and being too obstinate in the performance of it, dis­honoured and disgraced his excellent victorie which hee obtained by the cruell death of his daughter.

Thus we shall alwaies finde something in the Saints wor­thie of reprehension: The faith of the Saints accep­table vnto God, albeit it was mingled with many im­perfections. and yet notwithstanding the imperfe­ctions of their faith, it doth not therefore cease for all that to be approoued of God. Wherefore we are not to be discou­raged by reason of the vices wherewithall wee are incum­bred, neither yet thereby to become secure and carelesse, prouided that we by faith do hold on our course in follow­ing our vocation. And of Dauid. Dauid. Vnder Dauids name hee comprehends all the faithfull Kings; with whom also he ioynes Samuel and the Prophets. Samuel. In which words his mea­ning is to shew that the kingdome of Iudah was established by faith, and by the same faith endured vnto the end. The many victories which Dauid had ouer his enemies, were all [...] [Page 282]vnable to ouercome aduersities, vnlesse faith doe sustaine & vphold vs. And hereof we gather, that all those that haue a true confidence in God, are furnished with such a power, as is sufficient for them to resist, and stand steadfast by what meanes soeuer Satan shall assayle them: and especially that we shall neuer want patience to indure afflictions, Those that are indued with a sauing faith, shall neuer be destituted of patience. if so bee we haue faith: as also on the contrarie it is a sure marke that we are ouercome of infidelitie, when we faint and quaile in the time of persecutions, & of the crosse. For the nature of faith is the same at this day, that it was long agoe in the ho­ly fathers, of whom the Apostle maketh mention in this place. Wherefore if we follow the example of their faith, we shall not fall so fowlie as we doe by our slouthfulnesse. As touching the word racked, I haue therein followed the tran­slation of Erasmus: although others do expound it, Dismē ­bred: but in mine opinion the sense is more simple: to wit, that they were racked, as one would stretch a skinne vpon a drumme.

36 And others haue beene tried by mockings, and scour­gings, yea moreouer by bonds, and imprisonment.

37 They were stoned, they were hewen " or, savved. asunder, they were tempted, they were slaine with the sword, they wandred vp and downe in sheepes skinnes, and in goates skinnes, beeing destitute, afflicted, and tormented.

38 Whom the world was not worthie of: they wandred in wildernesses, and mountaines, and dennes, and caues of the earth.

39 And these all through faith obtained good report, and re­ceiued not the promise,

40 God prouiding a better thing for vs, that they without vs should not be made perfect.

VVHereas he saith they were tempted, Vers. 36 it seemeth su­perfluous: and I make no doubt, but because there is great affinitie in the Greeke tongue betweene these two words, cut asunder, and Tempted, that some tooke occasion [Page 283]thereby, being not well exercised in ye language, to adde the second in the margine: and so by succession of time, it hath since crept into ye text: as also Erasmus deemeth. Vers. 37 By the skins of sheepe, and goates, I thinke he rather meaneth the base and course garments of the faithfull, wherewith they were clad, when they fled into the deserts, than the tents which were made of skinnes. Now although some say that Ieremiah was stoned, Isaiah sawed asunder, and that the holy histo­rie telleth how Elias, and Elizeus, and other Prophets wandred into mountaines and caues: yet notwithstanding I doubt not, but he toucheth those cruell and horrible per­secutions, which Antiochus inflicted vpon the people of God, and those which befell them soone after.

And would not be deliuered.] He speaketh very properly. Verse 35 For they must haue denied God to redeeme a little pro­longing of this life. Now this had beene too wofull a re­demption. And therefore, to liue perpetually in heauen; they renounced this worldly life: which otherwise they must haue bought at so deere a rate, as thereby to renounce God (as we haue said) and to forsake their vocation. But we heare what Christ saith; if we will saue our liues in this world, we shall loose them for euer in the world to come. Matth. 10.39. Wherefore, Death is to be chosen rather then life, if vve cannot in­ioy it but with the forsa­king of God. if so be that a true loue of the re­surrection to come, doe possesse our hearts, it wil easily bring vs to the contemning of death. And to say truth, wherefore should we otherwise liue, vnlesse we liue to God? and when­soeuer it shall not be permitted vs to liue vnto him; we ought to suffer death willingly, or at the least without griefe of minde.

Fur [...]ermore by this sentence the Apostle confirmes that which he said, to wit, that the Saints ouercame all sorts of torments by faith. For if their hearts had not bin sustai­ned by the hope of the blessed resurrection, they should by and by haue fallen and quailed. Moreouer, we ought to ga­ther a very profitable exhortation from hence, whereby we may fortifie our faith against the time of aduersitie. For we ought not to refuse that the Lord should make vs compa­nions [...] [Page 286]testimonie of Gods kindnesse towards vs, that howsoeuer he hath shewed himselfe liberall to his children from the beginning of the world, yet he did so measure out and li­mit his grace, that he prouided for the saluation of the whole bodie. What can any amongest vs desire more, when we may say euery one in particular; God hath had as much care of me now, as he had in bestowing of his benefits vpon Abraham, Moses, Dauid; yea vpon all the Patriarks, Prophets, and faithfull Kings: euen of me, I say, to the end I might be vnited with them into the bodie of Christ? Let vs know then that wee are more than vnthankfull towards God, if he find lesse faith in vs vnder the kingdom of Christ, than the Fathers shewed themselues to haue vnder the law, and that by so many singular examples of patience. Where he saith, they receiued not the promise; it ought to bee vnder­stood of the shutting vp and last conclusion of the promises which are published to vs in Christ. Of which we haue said somewhat before.

CHAP. XII.

1 Wherefore let vs also, seeing we are compassed with so great a cloude of witnesses, cast away euery thing that presseth downe, and the sinne that hangeth so fast on: let vs runne with patience the race that is set before vs,

2 Looking vnto Iesus the author and finisher of our faith, who for the ioy that was set before him, endured the crosse and despised the shame, and is set at the right hand of the throne of God.

3 Wherfore consider him that endured such speaking against of sinners, least you should be wearied and faint in your mindes.

THis is the conclusion and shutting vp of the former Chapter, Vers. 1 wherin he sheweth to what end he hath made rehearsall of this Catalogue of the holy seruants of God, whose faith was so excellent vnder the Law: to wit, to the [Page 287]end that euery one might dispose himselfe to follow their steps. Now he calleth a great multitude, a clowde; by a bor­rowed speech: for a multitude is the opposite to few. Truly although they had been but a small number; yet ought we to be stirred vp by their example, much more when there is so great a cloude of them. Herewithall he saith, that wee are compassed about with this thicknes, or multitude, so that whi­thersoeuer we turne our eyes, wee still meete with many ex­amples of saith. As touching this word witnesses, I take it not so generally as if he called them Martyrs of God; but I ra­ther referre it to the present matter: as if he should haue said, that faith is sufficiently approoued by their witnes; so as there needes no more doubtings thereof now. For the vertues of the Saints, are as so many witnesses to confirme our faith, to the end wee hauing them for our leaders and companions, might goe vnto God the more cheerefully, and couragiously.

Let vs cast away euery thing that presseth downe.] Because he vseth a similitude taken from running in a race, he would also that wee should discharge our selues of all impedi­ments. For nothing is more contrarie vnto him that would make haste, than to be loden and pressed downe with bur­thens. Now there are diuers burthens which doe hinder vs, Burthens slack­ing our spiri­tuall race. and slaken our spirituall course: as first the loue of this life: the pleasures of this world: the lusts of the flesh: 1 the cares for earthly things: riches, honours, and all such things of these kindes. 2 Whosoeuer then will runne in this race of Christ, let him before all things cast off all impediments. 3 For wee are of our selues but too slow and heauie; 4 though we should meete with no pulbackes elsewhere. 5 And yet it is not simply commanded vs, to cast away our riches, or o­ther commodities of this present life, but so farre foorth as they slaken our course, because wee feele them vpon vs as cordes whereby Satan would pull vs backe, and binde vs hand and foote. We know that this metaphor of running, is much vsed in the Scripture: but he speakes not here of e [...]e­ry kinde of race, but of such a manner of pastime and exer­cise [Page 288]where many stroue who should runne best: in which one puts foorth his strength more than if he should goe, or runne alone by himselfe. The summe then is, that wee are entred into the lists, yea into an honourable and much fre­quented race: where there are also on euery side standers by present in great numbers; the Sonne of God being the chiefest there, who inuites and exhorts vs to winne the prise: it were therefore great shame for vs to faint, or become slack in the middle of our course. Now, howsoeuer the holy personages of whom he makes mention, are not onely wit­nesses, but companions also of the same race; who doe as it were point vs out the way: yet neuerthelesse he chose rather to call them witnesses, than runners in the race; thereby shewing vs that they be not such runners as doe enuie vs, or which would hinder vs to carrie away the prize: but that they stand there rather as approuers of our diligence, who are glad of our victories, and doe greatly reioyce therein. And Christ also not only sets the garland before vs, but also therwithal reacheth out his hand to furnish vs with strength and valour. In a word, it is he which prepares and fits vs to begin the race, and by his power carries vs home to the marke.

And sinne which hangeth so fast on.] This is the heauiest burthen wherewithall we are hindred. Now he saith that we are insnared, to the end we might know that no man is fit to runne this course, vnlesse hee discharge himselfe of these snares. He speakes not of outward or actuall sinnes, as they call them, but euen of the very fountaine; that is to say, of concupiscence, which so tyrannizeth ouer euery part of mā, that he feeles himselfe hampred on euery side with these snares. With patience. By this word we are alwaies admoni­shed what the principall thing is which the Apostle would haue vs to cōsider in faith: to wit, that in spirit we seek the kingdom of God, which is inuisible to the flesh, & surmoūts all our senses. For those that imploy their time about such meditations, doe easily despise all earthly things. And thus he could no way better turne the eyes of the Iewes from do­ting [Page 289]vpon their ceremonies, than to bring them to the true exercises of faith, by which they might learne that the king­dome of Christ was spirituall; farre excelling the beggerly rudiments of this world.

Who for the ioy, &c.] Vers. 2 He signifies that howsoeuer it was in the power of Christ to haue freed himselfe from all angui­shes and troubles; and to haue led an happie life, aboun­ding in all sorts of good things: yet that he chose willing­ly to endure a most painfull, cruell, and shamefull death. Touching this clause, for the ioy, it is as much as if he should haue said. In stead of the ioy: and the word ioy, compre­hends vnder it all manner of commodities. Now he saith they were set before him, because he had them in his hand, so as if it had pleased him, he might haue vsed thē. But if any man thinke this word for, signifies the finall cause; I do not much gainsay him: and so the sense will be, that Christ re­fused not the death of the crosse, because he saw the issue would be blessed and happie. Yet notwithstanding for mine owne part I incline to the first sense. Now hee commends the patience of Christ for two causes: first, 1 in respect that he endured a most bitter and sharpe death: secondly, 2 in regard that he despised the shame and ignominie of it. And after­wards he recites the glorious end of this his death, because the faithfull might know that all the euils which they en­dure, doe also turne vnto their glorie and saluation, if so bee they follow Christ. To the very same purpose S. Iames saith, You haue heard of the patience of Iob, and haue knowne what end the Lord made with him, chap. 5.11. The Apostle signifies then that all our miseries shall haue no worse suc­cesse, than Christ his miseries had: according to that which S. Paul saith, If we suffer with him, we shall also reigne with him, 2. Tim. 2.12.

Wherefore consider him, &c.] He amplifies his exhortation; Vers. 3 making a comparison of Christ with vs. For if the Sonne of God, whom all ought to adore, entred into so hard a com­bate of his owne free will, which of vs dare refuse to submit himselfe thereunto with him? For this onely meditation [...] [Page 292]second hee yeelds a reason; 2 because the Lord corrects him whom hee loueth. Now in as much as Salomon begins his speech thus, My sonne, the Apostle admonisheth vs by this so sweete and gratious a name of fonne, that wee ought in such wise to bee drawne and allured, that this exhortation should euen enter into the depth of our hearts. Moreouer, thus stands Salomons argument: If the scourges of God doe beare witnes of the loue he beares vs, were it not an vngra­tious part in vs to be vexed and grieued thereat, or to hate them? For we must needes say that those are more than vn­thankfull, that will not let the Lord alone when hee chasti­seth them for their good; but much more if they reiect and cast off this signe of his fatherly kindnes towards them.

For the Lord correcteth him whom he loueth.] Vers. 6 This reason seemes not to be very firme. Obiection. For God doth indifferently pu­nish the reprobates as well as the elect: and his roddes doe oftner declare his wrath than his loue. For the holy Scrip­ture on the one side so speakes: and experience on the o­ther side confirmes it. Answere. But when the word of God is direc­ted to the faithfull, then wee must not wonder if it onely speake of this vse, and fruite of chastisements which they feele. For howsoeuer God shews himselfe to be a seuere & angrie Iudge against the reprobates as oft as hee punisheth them; yet he respects none other end in correcting his cho­sen, God hath no other end in afflicting the elect, but there­by to prouide for their salua­tion. but thereby to prouide for their saluation: which vn­doubtedly is a signe of his fatherly good will. Moreouer, because the reprobates know not that they are gouerned by the hand of God, they therefore thinke most an end that they are afflicted by chance. As if a rebellious childe, forsa­king his fathers house, should get himselfe a great way off, and there become a vagabond, and should there feele the smart of hunger and colde, or other pouerties: this indeede were a worthie punishment which hee well deserued for his follie, that so he might learne to his costs what it is to diso­bey a good father: and yet notwithstanding he would not for all this acknowledge that this were a fatherly correc­tion. So the vnbeleeuers, although they are, as you would [Page 293]say, giuen ouer, and banished from God, & from his house, yet they perceiue not that it is the hand of God that touch­eth them. Let vs remember then that we cannot otherwise feele the loue of God towards vs in the middest of his rods and chastisements, vnlesse wee be well perswaded, that they are so many fatherly corrections and scourges, by which God chastiseth vs for our sinnes. But there can nothing of all this come into the mindes of the reprobates, The reason vvhy the [...] ked receiue benefit by [...] ­flictions. because they are of fugitiue spirits: that is to say, they care for no­thing, but that they may haue alwaies their swindge, and might neuer be drawne into Gods presence, to appeare be­fore him: adde yet hereunto that iudgement must begin at the house of God, 1. Pet. 4.17. Wherefore, howsoeuer God doe indifferently punish as well the strangers as his owne household; yet neuerthelesse, he so openeth his armes wide vnto these latter, that in the meane while he sheweth by e­uident tokens that he hath a particular care ouer them. But the true solution indeede is this, that whosoeuer he be that knoweth, and is perswaded that hee is cha [...]sed of him, ought by and by to ascend vp into this imagination, Surely this comes to passe because I am loued of God. Afflictions can­not hurt vs, be­cause God stāds betvveene vs and them. For whilest the faithfull doe feele God to bee betweene them and the weight of the euils which they endure in the punishments and chastisements which he inflicteth vpon them here, they haue therein a certaine pledge and seale of his loue. For if he loued them not, he would not bee thus carefull for their saluation.

And therefore the Apostle concludes, that God offereth himselfe as a father to all those that endure correction. For they that kick and wince, as restie iades are wont to doe; or that take the bridle betweene their teeth, and obstinately resist; are not of this number. Hovv vve may knovv vvhen afflictions are tokens of Gods loue towards vs. Wherefore this is ye in a word which he teacheth, that corrections doe then prooue tokens of Gods fatherly loue towards vs, when wee in all obedience doe meekly submit our selues vnto them.

For what child is it whom the father chastiseth not? He takes an argument, Vers. 7 whereby hee concludes from the custome of [...] [Page 296]the creation of soules of any helpe of man; and on the other side, doth miraculously reforme and renue them by the se­cret vertue of his spirit: for this cause he is specially called the father of Spirits.

When he saith, and we gaue them reuerence, hee toucheth the affection which is naturally imprinted in vs: to wit, that we giue our fathers reuerence euen then when they deale roughly and seuerely with vs.

When he saith, Shall we not much more be in subiection to the Father of Spirits? he signifies, it is good reason that wee should suffer God to inioy that rule and power of gouern­ment which he ought to exercise ouer vs, as also that right of a father, to which we ought to subiect our selues. When he saith, Nothing more hurtfull, than disobedience to God. that we might liue, he toucheth the cause or the end. Now wee are admonished by this clause, that there is no­thing more pernicious or hurtfull vnto vs, than when we re­fuse to be gouerned vnder the obedience of God.

For they verily for a few daies, Vers. 10 &c.] This is the second am­plification, as I haue said: to wit, that chastisements are ap­pointed and ordained to tame and mortifie the flesh, that we might be renued according to the image of the heauen­ly life. Whence it appeares, that the fruit of them are per­petuall; and that we are not to looke so much for the same at the hands of men; because their discipline and correction is but a part of the politicall order, which properly belong­eth to this life present. Now from hence it followes, that the chastisement or corrections of God doe bring much more profit and benefit with them: to wit, euen so much more as the spirituall holinesse of God is more excellent than bodi­ly commodities. If it be obiected, that it is the dutie of fa­thers to instruct their children in the worshippe and feare of God; and therefore it may seeme their corrections ought not to be restrained to so little a while: I answer, this is very true: but the Apostle speakes here of that houshold gouern­ment which we are accustomed to call outward policie. For although it belongs to the Magistrates office to main­taine religion, yet notwithstanding we may say that their [Page 297]office is contained within the limits of this life present: be­cause otherwise the ciuill and earthly gouernment, could not bee distinguished from the spirituall kingdome of Christ.

Moreouer, whereas hee saith, that Gods corrections are profitable to obtaine sanctification: this ought not so to bee taken, as if they sanctified vs properly; but that they are as helpes and meanes to prepare vs, because the Lord thereby exerciseth vs for the taming and subduing of our flesh.

Now no chastisement for the present, &c.] He addes this, Vers. 11 to the ende we should not measure the chastisements of God, by our present feeling. For he sheweth that we are like vn­to children which hate and flie the rodde as much as in them is, because they are not of discretion to iudge howe profita­ble it is for them. This admonition then is to shew, that cha­stisements shall not be esteemed of vs as they ought, if wee iudge of them by the present feeling of the flesh: and that we are therefore to bend our sight to the end thereof: for thereby shall wee apprehend this gratious and desireable fruite of righteousnesse. He calles this fruit quiet, because we tremble whilst aduersitie is vpon vs; and are in vnquietnes. For we are tempted with impatience, which is alwaies full of clamorous and foolish rumblings: but after the storme is ouer, we discerne by the spirit of discretion what profit and commoditie that hath brought vs, which before seemed bitter and tedious vnto vs.

12 Wherefore lift vp your hands which hang downe, and your weake knees,

13 And make straight steppes vnto your feete, least that which is halting, be turned out of the way, but let it rather be healed.

14 Follow peace with all men, and holines, Rom. 12.18. without which no man shall see the Lord.

15 Take heed, that no man fall away from the grace of God: let no roote of bitternesse spring vp and trouble you, least there­by many be defiled. [...] [Page 300]nor to the left. In summe, he giues vs this rule of well doing, to wit, that we order our steps according to the will of God: to the end that neither feare, nor the intisements of this world; no nor any impediment whatsoeuer doe turne vs out of the right way.

And therefore he addes, least that which is halting be tur­ned out of the way, that is to say, least by halting you bee cast behinde farre from the way. Now hee calles it an halting, when mens mindes doe varie: being now of that opinion, and then of that. As also when they doe not wholy and vn­fainedly submit themselues to God. So speakes Elias to those double hearted ones, who mingled the seruice of God with their superstitions; How long (saith he) will you halt betweene two opinions? 1. King. 18.21. Now this is a very fit manner of speaking and wants not his grace: for it is farre worse to erre than to halt. Those which begin to halt doe not turne out of the way at the first chop, but they re­coyle backe by little and little more and more, till being ca­ried away into error, they finde themselues fast snared in the middest of Satans labyrinth. VVe must take heed of halting in Gods mat­ters betimes. The Apostle admonisneth vs then that wee labour to take heede of halting betimes, be­cause if wee once fall to dissemble, and bethinke vs not of a remedie, wee shall at the last with the time turne farre off from God. We may also turne it in this manner, Least hal­ting corrupt, or estrange it selfe: but the sense will remaine alwaies one. For the Apostle signifies that those which keep not the right way, but suffer themselues by carelesnes to erre hither or thither any way whatsoeuer; doe in processe of time, as much as in them is, wholy estrange themselues from God.

Let vs follow peace, Vers. 14 &c.] The nature of man is so corrup­ted, that it seemes euery man fleeth peace. For euery one is giuen to himself: euery one would be soothed in his course, and none vouchsafes to applie himselfe to the weaknes of another. If vve take not exceeding paines in pur­suing of peace, vve shall neuer keepe it. Wherefore vnlesse we take exceeding great pains to follow peace, we shall neuer keepe it. For there is no day but many things fall out, which will giue vs sufficient occa­sion [Page 301]of dissentions and braules. Therefore it is that the A­postle commandeth vs to follow peace: as if hee should say, Ye thinke it sufficient onely to keepe and to loue it for the commoditie it brings you: but you ought to enforce your selues to keepe it in perfection amongst your selues with all your might. Which yet is vnpossible, vnlesse we forget ma­ny iniuries, and pardon one another in many things.

Notwithstanding, because a godly man cannot obtaine peace with the wicked vpon any condition, but in flattring them in their bad courses: therefore the Apostle addes im­mediatly after, that we must ioyne peace with holinesse: as if he recommended peace vnto vs vnder this exception, That we take heede the friendship of the wicked doe not pollute nor defile vs. For this word holinesse, is properly referred to God. VVe must striue to keepe peace vvith men: yet so as we lose not ho­linesse, nor hurt our conscien­ces. Wherefore though the whole world should be on a flame with warres and contentions, yet must not we leaue holinesse, which is the band of our coninunction wee haue with God. To be short, let vs keepe peace with men, yet so as we hurt not our conscience. He saith, that without holines none can see the Lord: because wee shall neuer behold God with other eyes, than with those which shall be reformed according to his image.

Take heede that no man fall away; or, looke carefully to it. Vers. 15 By these words hee sheweth that it is an easie matter to fall from the grace of God. For it is not without cause that hee requireth vs to bee watchfull in this behalfe: for Satan no sooner seeth vs carelesse, or retchlesse, but he hath forthwith inuironed and surprised vs. To be short, wee had neede take courage to vs, and to be watchfull, if we meane to perseuere in the grace of God. Now by this word grace, he compre­hends our whole vocation. But if any will from hence in­ferre that the grace of God hath no efficacie, vnlesse wee worke with him by our owne proper mouing; it shall bee but a friuolous argument. Wee know very well how great the sluggishnes of our flesh is: hath it not great neede then to be continually pricked an end? But when the Lord pro­uokes and stirres vs vp by admonitions and warnings, hee [...] [Page 304]which, if we will compare all the riches, all the commodi­ties, all the honours, and delights of this world, be it what­soeuer men are wont to esteeme requisite for a happie and prosperous life: all these things in regard of the other, are scarcely worth a poore messe of broth. Now the reason why we thinke so highly of those things which are in effect as nothing, The cause why the things of this world are in such high account with vs. is because some wicked lust hath dazled our eies: yea rather, hath put them cleane out. Wherefore if so be we meane to haue any place in the sanctuarie of God, let vs learne to contemne and despise such suppings by which Sa­tan is wont to pamper the wicked, and to hold them in his nets.

For ye know how afterward, Vers. 17 &c.] At the first he thought it a matter of nothing to sell his birthright, esteeming it but a matter of sport: but in the ende, when it was too late, he felt what hurt he had done himselfe, when hee was depriued of the blessing: and that his father gaue it to Iacob his brother. They also who beeing taken in Satans nets in the pleasures of this world, estranging themselues from God, selling their saluatiō, to fil their bellies with earthly things, which are but as the suppings of the kitchin, thinke all this while that they loose nothing: but rather, as if they were then become mar­ueilous happie, please and flatter themselues. At the last god opens their eies by some admonition to see their own wret­chednesse, and then they are touched to the quicke with the feeling of their losse, whereof they made no account before. Whilest Esau was hungrie, hee cares for nothing, but how he may fill his bellie: when he was full, he mockes: & thinkes his brother a foole, who had willingly parted with his pot­tage. Euen such for all the world is the blockishnesse of the vnfaithfull, whilest they are inflamed with their corrupt de­sires, or when they plunge themselues aboue measure in their ioyes. Whereas he saith, he was reprooued, it is as much as if he had said, he was reiected or repulsed.

For he found no place to repentance, &c.] That is to say, his late repentance did profit him nothing; or, that he got no­thing by it; although he sought that blessing with teares; [Page 305]which through his own default he had lost. Now in as much as he doth here denounce such a danger to hang ouer the heads of all the contemners of Gods grace: Question. it may there­vpon be demaunded, a man hauing receiued the grace of God, and afterward contemne it, preferring the world be­fore his kingdome; whether there be no more hope of par­don for such a one? I answer, Answere. pardon is not precisely denied to such, but they are to be admonished to take heede the like also befall not them. And in very trueth, wee may see many examples euery day of Gods seueritie in this behalfe, whereby he takes vengeance vpon the mockeries and scoffs of prophane men. For howsoeuer they promise themselues the next day to amend in; oftentimes he preuēts their hopes in taking them suddainly out of this world by new and vn­expected kinds of death: and whilest they esteeme all that which they heare of Gods iudgements to be but as a fable; he pursues them so as they are constrained to feele him their iudge: and whilest they would faine lulle their consciences asleepe; they are suddenly abashed by feeling horrible tor­ments: and is it not a iust punishment of their blockishnes? Now howsoeuer this happēs not to all, yet not withstāding because there is danger that it may befall some; therefore the Apostle for good cause admonisheth all in generall to beware. Others aske another question here, to wit, Question. if any sin­ner that repents bee profited nothing at all thereby. For it seemes he meant to say so, when he teacheth that repen­tance did Esau no good. I answer, Answere. that repentance is not here taken for a true and sound conuersion vnto God, but onely for that feare wherewith God wounds the wicked af­ter they haue along time sported themselues in their ma­lice. Now we are not to maruell if it be said that this feare is vnprofitable; because they come not to amendment of life by it, neither doe they come to the hatred of their sinnes, but are onely tormented with the punishments they in­dure. And as much may be said of his teares. As oft as the sinner groaneth, the Lord is ready to pardon; and a man shall neuer seeke mercie at Gods hands in vaine, because the [...] [Page 308]the burning fire; the whirelewinde, and of the tempest, with such other things. For these miracles and signes which God shewed to giue authority to his law, & to cause it to be rece­ued with reuerence; if we con [...]ser thē in thēselues they are indeed magnificent & heauenly: but when we come to the kingdome of Christ, the things which God sets before vs therein surpasseth all heauens. And thus it comes to passe, that all the dignitie of the law beginnes to waxe in a man­ner earthly. For in this manner Mount Sinai might be tou­ched with hands: but the mountaine of Sion cannot bee ap­prehended but by the spirit. All those things which are re­cited in the 19. of Exodus, were visible figures: but those which we haue in the kingdome of Christ, are hidden from the sense of the flesh. If any shall obiect, Obiection. that the significati­on of all these things was spirituall, and that there are yet at this day externall exercises of godlinesse, by which we are raised vp to heauen: I answer, Answere. that the Apostle speakes by comparison from the lesse to the greater. Now when wee come once to conferre the law with the Gospel, no man doubts but that which is spirituall in the Gospel carrieth his waight in this behalfe: and contrariwise, that the earthly signes in the law, were more apparant, and surmounted the rest in number.

So that they which heard it, Verse. 19 &c.] This is the second mem­ber, wherein he shewes that the law was farre vnlike the go­spel, because when that came to be published, all was full of feare and diuers astonishments. For whatsoeuer we read of these things in the 19. of Exodus, tended to cause the people to know that God ascended vp into his iudgement seate, to shew himselfe a seuere iudge. If it happened that an innocent beast did approach too neere, hee commanded it should be thrust through with a dart: Vers. 20 how much greater pu­nishmēt then was prepared for sinners, who felt themselues guiltie, yea and knew that the law made their inditement, and gaue sentence of eternall death against them? But the gospel containes nothing but sweetnes and amiable things, prouided that we receiue it by faith. And if any desire fur­ther [Page 309]satisfaction in this matter, let him haue recourse to the Comment vpon the third chapter of the 2. Cor.

Now in that he saith, the people required it might be spoken no more vnto thē: it ought not so to be taken as if the people had been vnwilling to heare the words of God: but they instantly intreated that they might not bee constrained to heare God speake any more in his own person. For the per­son of Moses comming betweene did somewhat asswage the astonishment. Notwithstanding there is yet a point which troubleth the expositors: that is, that the Apostle at­tributes these words to Moses, I feare and quake, Vers. 21 which words we reade not that Moses spake. But it will be no hard matter to giue a solution to this, if we consider that Moses spake this in the name of the people, as if he had been their interpreter to God. It was a common complaint then of all the people; but Moses is brought in speaking of it; who was, as you would say, the common mouth of them all.

But ye are come to the mount Sion, &c.] Vers. 22 He alludes to the prophecies, by which God promised in times past that the Gospell should come foorth of Sion: Isai. 2. and such o­ther places. Hee compares mount Sion then, with mount Sinai: and afterward, the heauenly Hierusalem (which hee calles heauenly of purpose) to the end the Iewes should not rest in that earthly Ierusalem which flourished, and was in great estimation vnder the Law. For in as much as they were bent with an obstinate affection to remaine still vnder the yoke and bondage of the Law; they made it of mount Sion, to become mount Sinai, as S. Paul saith, Gal. 4. By the hea­uenly Ierusalem then he meanes that which should be built throughout the world: as in the Prophet Zachariah, the Angell stretcheth the line of it from East to West.

And to the companie of innumerable Angels.] Vers. 23 His meaning is, that wee are made fellowes with the Angels: reckoned with the Patriarkes: and gathered into heauen among all the blessed Spirits; when Christ calles vs to himselfe by the Gospell. Now it is an inestimable honour which the hea­uenly Father doth vs; in making vs companions with the [...] [Page 312]further he here shewes what he meant in the former compa­rison: to wit, that the contemners of the Gospell shall be sharply punished, seeing the ancient people went not vnpu­nished which despised the law: as also he followes his other argument which he took from the lesse to the greater, when he saith that God; or Moses spake then on earth: and that now the same God; or Christ speakes now frō heauen. Al­though I had rather referre both the one and the other to God. Now he saith that God spake on earth, because he spake more low and after a manner lesse authenticall. Let vs al­waies remember that the outward administration of the Law is here handled: the which, if wee compare with the Gospell, shall be found such as smelleth something of the earth; because it doth not raise vp the minds of men aboue the heauens, vnto a perfect wisedome. For howsoeuer the law containes the same doctrine, yet for as much as it was a schoolmaster onely; perfection is alwaies taken from it.

Whose voyce then shooke the earth, Vers. 26 &c.] Seeing God did then shake the earth when he published the Law, he proues that God speakes now much more diuinely, and gloriously: because the earth is not onely shaken, but the heauen also. For his proofe he alleageth the place of Haggai, the which notwithstanding he recites not word for word: but because the Prophet foretels that heauen and earth shall be shaken, the Apostle takes these words vp, to shew that the voyce of the Gospell not onely thundreth in earth, but it also pear­ceth aboue the heauens. No doubt but Agge there speakes of the kingdome of Christ. For it by and by followes in the text, I will moue all nations, and the desire of all people shal come; and I will fill this house with my glorie. Now it is out of question that all people were not gathered into the same bodie, till they were gathered vnder the leading of Christ: neither is there any other desire wherewith wee can rest satisfied, but in the same Iesus Christ. Againe, Salomons Temple did not surmount in glorie, till the greatnes thereof was spread throughout the whole world. Wee neede not doubt therefore but that the Prophet points out the time of [Page 313]Christ. So then if from the beginning of Christ his kingdom it was necessarie that not onely the lower parts of the earth should be shaken, but that his power should come euen to heauen it selfe: truly the Apostle rightly gathers that the doctrine of the Gospell is more excellent, and ought to bee heard with the greater euidence of all creatures.

And this word, yet once more, &c.] Vers. 27 In the text of the Pro­phet it is word for word; Yet a little while. Now his mea­ning is, that the calamitie of the people shall not endure long, before the Lord wil send deliuerance. But the Apostle stands not vpon the phrase; only he inferres by the mouing of the heauens, and the earth, that the whole state of the world should be changed at Christ his comming. For what­soeuer is created is subiect to change; but the kingdome of Christ is eternall: wherefore it necessarily followes there­upon that al creatures ought to be reformed and made bet­ter. From thence he comes to make an exhortation; to wit, that we apprehend this kingdom which cannot be shaken: for the reason why the Lord remoues vs, is to the end he might confirme vs truly and for euer in himselfe. Notwith­standing I approoue rather of the reading of the old Latin translator, which is thus; Taking the kingdome, we haue grace. If wee reade it by an affirmation, the sense will runne very well: to wit, that when we receiue the Gospell, the spirit of Christ is giuen vs, to the end wee may serue God with reue­rence and feare.

If we reade it by way of exhortation, to wit, Let vs haue, it will bee a more obscure and constrained manner of speech. In a word, I take it the Apostle meant to say, that if so be we enter into ye kingdom of Christ by faith, we shall obtaine assured grace, which will cause vs to serue God with fruite: for euen as the kingdome of Christ is farre higher than the world, so also is the gift of regeneration. When he faith, By which we may serue God, so as wee may please him, with reuerence and feare, although he requires a readines and de­light in the obedience which wee giue him; yet he there­withall signifies, that God approoues of no seruice which is [...] [Page 316]their owne abode, for the name of Christ. And that he might the better prouoke those to whom he writes to the perfor­mance of this dutie, he addes, that some haue receiued An­gels into their houses vnawares, thinking they had beene but men. I doubt not but this is to be vnderstood of Abraham, and Lot. For they beeing accustomed to entertaine stran­gers, sometimes lodged Angels vnawares, when yet they thought of no such matter: & thus their houses were great­ly honoured. And questionlesse the Lord also shewed eui­dent signes how acceptable hospitalitie is vnto him, when he so largely recompenced both Abraham and Lot. VVhen we in­uite the poore to our houses: in them we giue entertain­ment to Christ. Obiection. If any obiect that this fell not out often, Answere. the answer is easie: Angels are not onely receiued, but euen Christ himselfe is entertai­ned of vs, when we receiue the poore home to our houses in his name. There is an allusion, and an artificiall manner of speech in the Greeke words, which haue an excellent grace, which cannot be expressed in the French.

Remember those that are in bonds, Vers. 3 &c.] There is nothing which mooueth vs more to mercie and compassion, than when we put vpon our selues the person of those that are afflicted. And therefore he saith, that we ought to bee mind­full of the prisoners, euen as if we were in their place. That which immediately followeth in the other member is di­uersly expounded, to wit, as you your selues also, beeing of the bodie. Some take it generally, thus; you also are subiect to the same aduersities and inconueniences, which are incident to all mankinde. And others restraine it thus; as if you were in their person. I like neither the one nor the other. For I re­ferre it to the whole bodie of the Church: and so, the sense will bee, seeing you are members of the same bodie, you ought to bee mooued with the afflictions of one and other, to the ende there may be no separation betweene you.

Marriage is honourable, Vers. 4 &c.] Some thinke this to be an exhortation to those that are married, to the end they might liue chastly, and in such honestie in marriage as thereunto appertaineth: also, that the husband should dwell with his wife in all chastitie, and modestie, that their bedde bee not [Page 317]prophaned by lasciuious dishonestie. And so this word, let it be, should be supplied. Notwithstanding, it is not amisse if we should say, Mariage is honourable among al. For when we heare that mariage is honourable, ought it not by and by to come into our mindes: Surely, we ought to liue in the same honourably, and reuerently? Others take it by way of yeelding or granting, thus: Although mariage be honoura­ble, yet it is not lawfull to commit fornication. But euery one may peceiue that this sense is too cold. For mine owne part, I rather thinke that the Apostle here opposeth mari­age to whoredome, as the remedie for the disease: and the course of the text doeth euidently shewe that his meaning is so. For before he threatens whoremongers with the iudge­ments of God, he first shewes them what the true meane is to auoid this vengeance: that is, if we liue honestly in mari­age. Let this then be one member, That whoredomes shal not escape vnpunished, because it is Gods office to shew his ven­geance vpon them. And seeing he hath beene pleased to blesse the societie of man and wife, which himselfe hath ordained; it followes then that all other societies or fellowshipps, out of marriage, are accursed and condemned of him. Wherfore he not onely threatens adulterers with punishment, but all manner of fornicators also. For all of them doe flinch backe from the holy institution of God: yea they corrupt, and o­uerthrow it; abusing themselues indifferently with all com­panies, whilest there is but one lawfull coniunction onely which is ratified and confirmed in the name and by the au­thority of God. Now because it is impossible to represse the ouerflowing of whordomes, without the remedie of mari­age, for this cause he commends it vnto vs, calling it honou­rable.

That which he addes afterward of the bed vndefiled; I wil­lingly referre it to this, namely, that married persons might know that all things are not permitted vnto them; but that they ought rather to vse the lawfull bedde with all moderation, to the ende they might abstaine from whatso­euer was contrarie to the shamefastnesse and honestie of [...]

REmember them, Vers. 7 &c.] The things which follow doe not appertaine so much to manners, as to doctrine. In the first place hee sets the example of those before the Iewes of whom they had been taught: and peraduenture he speakes particularly of those which had sealed the doctrine which they had taught with their owne blood. For he noteth out something worthie of remembrance, when he saith, Consider what hath been the end of their cōuersation. And yet this is no impediment why wee may not also vnderstand it gene­rally of those which haue continued in the true faith vnto the end: who also haue giuen faithfull testimonie to the holesome doctrine, both in their death, as also in the whole course of their life. Now this is a matter of no small conse­quence, when he sets their Teachers before them to follow. For wee ought to esteeme them as fathers which haue be­gotten vs in Christ. Had they seene their Leaders constant and stable then, partly in the middest of cruell persecutions, and partly in the middest of diuers fights? So much the ra­ther ought they in all reason to be the more willing to fol­low their steps.

Iesus Christ yesterday, Vers. 8 &c.] The onely meanes which cau­seth vs to perseuere in the true faith is, if we keepe the foun­dation, not recoyling backe from it so much as an haires bredth. All knowledge is but meere vanitie that is separate from the knowledge of Christ. For his knowledge is but meere vanity that knowes not Christ, yea although hee should therewith comprehend both heauen and earth. For all the treasures of wisedom and knowledge are hid in him, Coloss. 3.3. Here therefore wee haue an excellent place, out of which wee learne that there is none other rule of true knowledge, but to rest all our senses in Christ alone. Moreouer, because the Apostle had to deale with the Iewes, he sheweth that Christ hath alwaies held the same principalitie which he now holds at this day: and that he shall be alwaies like vnto himselfe euen to the end of the world. He was yesterday (saith he) and to day, he is also the same for euer. By these words he signifies, that the same Christ which hath been now manifested in the world, hath reigned from the beginning of the world: and that it [Page 321]is not lawfull to goe any further, being once come to him. Yesterday then comprehends all the time of the old Testa­ment: and to the end they should not looke for some sud­den change afterwards, because the publishing of the Gos­pell was yet but newly begun, he saith that Christ was so re­uealed newly vnto them, that the same knowledge of him should not fade, but endure for euer. By this it appeares that the Apostle disputes not about the eternall essence of Christ, but of his knowledge, which had place among the faithfull in all times, and who hath bin the perpetuall foun­dation of the Church. It is very certaine that Christ was, be­fore hee manifested his power: but the question is now, what it is which the Apostle here entreates of. And there­fore I say, that in this speech he aimes at the qualitie (as you would say) and not at the essence. For here is no disputing whether Christ be eternall with his Father or no, but what his knowledge hath been amongst men. Furthermore, the manifestation of Christ vnder the Law was otherwise, in re­gard of the outward manner and meanes, than at this day: yet that hinders not, but the Apostle very fitly, and proper­ly saith, that it is alwaies one selfesame Christ to whom the faithfull looked and aimed at.

Be not carried about, &c. Vers. 9 He gathers that we ought not to flote hither and thither, seeing the truth of Christ is sure and stable; in which also wee ought to rest. The cause of superstitions, errors, and corruptions in religion. For out of question the cause of the diuersitie of opinions; of all sorts of super­stitions; of all monstrous errors; in a word, of all corrup­tions of true religion, ariseth from hence, that men doe not rest themselues wholy in Christ alone. For that which Saint Paul teacheth is not in vaine, to wit, that Christ is made vn­to vs of God wisedome, 1. Cor. 1.30. The summe then of the place is, that we must rest in Christ alone, if we will embrace the grounded truth of God. From whence wee gather that all those who are ignorant of Christ, are laid open to all the bewitchings of Satan: because that out of him there is no stabilitie of faith, but contrariwise innumerable tossings and turnings. The Papists then shewed themselues marueilous [...] [Page 324]ceremony of the Law to the present estate of the Church. There was a speciall kinde of solemne sacrifice, whereof mention is made in the 16. chapter of Leuiticus, whereof the Priests and Leuites had no part. Hee now shewes here by a fit allusion, that this is accomplished in Christ, be­cause he was offered vpon this condition, that those who serued in the Tabernacle should not eate of it. Now by those who serued in the Tabernacle, he meanes all them who addict themselues to ceremonies. Thus he teacheth that if wee will communicate with Christ, wee must renounce the Tabernacle. For euen as this word Altar, comprehends the offering and the thing sacrificed; so also this word Taber­nacle comprehends vnder it all the externall figures which were conioyned with the Tabernacle. The sense of the place then is this, that we are not to marueile if the ancient cere­monies of the Law doe now cease. For this was figured in the sacrifice which the Leuites carried out of the host to be burned there, Leuit. 16.27. to wit, because that euen as the Ministers of the Tabernacle did eate nothing at all of it: so also if we serue in the Tabernacle, that is to say, if we yet re­taine the ceremonies thereof, we shall not participate of this sacrifice which Christ hath once offered, nor of the satisfac­tion which hee hath once accomplished by his blood. For he carried his blood into the heauenly Sanctuarie: to the end he might doe away the sinnes of the world.

Let vs goe foorth to him, Vers. 13 &c.] To the end the Allegorie which he brought before, or the similitude taken vpon a de­riuation of the ancient ceremonie of the law, might not seeme to be farre fetched, he addes a good, and a necessarie exercise which is required of all Christians. And this order and manner of teaching S. Paul also is wont to keepe: to wit, he shewes the faithfull wherein God would haue them exercised, when he endeuours to turne them from those ce­remonies, which are now become friuolous. As if he should say, This is it that God requires of you, and not that where­in you trauaile for nothing. The very same course doth the Apostle now take. For when he calleth vs to follow Christ, [Page 325]hauing left the Tabernacle: what doeth he else but admo­nish vs that there is another manner of matter required at our hands, than to say that we serue God in the shadow, that is to say, at our ease, and without paine, vnder the glit­tering magnificence of the Temple: because we must march further, and must follow our vocation through flights, ba­nishments, iniuries, afflictions, slaunders, reproaches, and through all manner of incombrances? The Apostle then sets this condition of fighting, in which we must labour & sweat vnto blood, as opposite against those exercises which con­sisted in shadowes, in the meditation whereof, these masters of ceremonies onely boasted.

For here haue we no continuing, &c.] Vers. 14 He extendes that go­ing forth whereof he made mention yet further: to wit, that we thinke with our selues that we are as strāgers, & wande­rers in this world, and that our onely place of rest waiteth for vs in heauen. Thus then, as often as we are either driuen out of any place, or that any change befalles vs, let vs medi­tate of that which the Apostle here teacheth: to wit, A meditation for the exiled. that we haue no certaine abiding vpon the earth, because heauen is our home, and inheritance. And the more we are exercised, the more let vs alwaies prepare our selues euen to the last going forth. For those who liue too much at their ease, Iob. 29.18. Psal. 30.6.7. and in rest, doe for the most part dreame of a neast here. And there­fore seeing we are inclined to such carelesnesse and securi­tie, it is profitable for vs to be tossed and led often hither & thither, to the ende we may learne to direct our eies to hea­uen, which otherwise are too much inclined to the earth.

Let vs therefore by him, &c.] Verse. 15 Hee returnes to that speciall doctrine, which he touched before, to wit, of the auncient ceremonies abolished. Now he preuents that which might be obiected to the cont [...]arie. For seeing the sacrifices are in­feriour to the Tabernacle, as things depending vpon it, it followes that the Tabernacle beeing abolished, the sa­crifices also doe cease, and are abolished. Now the Apostle hath shewed, that in as much as Christ hath suffered without the gate, we also are called thither: and for this cause, those who minde to follow him, ought to forsake the Tabernacle. [...] [Page 328]he had onely commanded till the abolishment of the law.

Besides there is also an exhortation ioyned with this do­ctrine, which ought marueilously to prouoke vs to exercise the duties of loue to our neighbours. For it is no small ho­nour when he accounts the good which we doe to men for sacrifices offered to himselfe: and that he so greatly deckes and adornes the good turnes and seruices that we haue done (which yet are scarce worth the naming) as to pro­nounce them to be sacred and holy things. Wherfore, when we suffer loue to grow cold amongst vs, we not onely there­by defraud men of their right, but also euen God himselfe: who by a solemne title hath consecrated all the good which he commands vs to doe vnto men, to himselfe. The word communication extendes it selfe further than beneficence, which is the shewing of mercie. For it comprehends all the pleasures and seruices which men doe one to another. And this is the true badge of loue, The true badge of loue. to wit, when those who are knit together by the band of Gods spirit, doe communicate of their good things one to another.

Obey your leaders.] Vers. 17 I doubt not but he speakes of the Pa­stors and other Gouernours of the Church. For there were then no Christian Magistrates: and where he saith, that they watch for your soules, it properly appertaines to the spirituall gouernment. 1 In the first place he commands them to yeeld obedience: 2 in the next place, honour. These two things are necessarily required: first, that the people beleeue the do­ctrine which their pastors teach: secondly, that they reue­rence them. But withall we must obserue that the Apostle speakes onely of those who exercise their office faithfully. For those that haue nothing but the bare title, and (which is worse) doe abuse this title of Pastor to destroy the Church, such deserue no great reuerēce; least of all, that credit should be giuen vnto them, or that one should beleeue them. The Apostle doth very apparantly expresse this, when he saith, that they watch for your soules: which only appertaines vnto those who doe faithfully execute their office; who are Pa­stors indeede, according as their name signifies. The Papists [Page 329]then are twice sottish, to goe about to confirme the tyranny of their Idol the Pope from this place. The h. ghost cōmāds that we receiue the doctrine of the faithfull Christiā Bishops & Pastors with all obedience; & to obey their good & ho­ly counsels. And it is his will also that we reuerence, and ho­nour them. But what fauour or allowance doth this giue to these which are but Bishops onely in shewe? And yet not­withstanding all those which are called Bishops vnder the Papacie are not onely such, but are also cruell butchers of mens soules, and enraged Woolfes.

But leauing to tell what they are, I will onely say this for the present; VVe must learne to dis­cerne true Pa­stors from false that when commandement is giuen vs to sub­mit our selues to our Pastors, we ought diligently and pru­dently to discerne who they be that are the true and faith­full leaders. For if we beare this honour, and reuerence, in­differently to all those that are in this office, 1 first we shall doe iniurie to the good: secondly, 2 the reason which he here addes, shall not be practised; to wit, that they are worthy of honour, because they watch for our soules. Wherefore if the Pope and all his followers will indeed helpe themselues with this testimonie of holy scripture, it is necessarily requi­red of them aboue all things, that they prooue themselues to be of the number of them which watch for our saluation. If they make this plaine and euident vnto vs, there will thē be no let or impediment which should hinder the faith­full to giue honour, and reuerence vnto them.

They watch for your soules.] He signifies that by how much the greater their charge is, by so much the more are they worthy of honour. For the more any shall take paines for vs, and imploy himselfe with greater danger and difficulties for our good; so much the more also should we acknow­ledge our selues bound vnto such a one. But such is the charge of the Bishops, that it carrieth with it, and in it mar­ueilous encombrances; besides the extreame danger to which it lieth open. If we will then acknowledge the good which they doe vs, shall we be vnwilling to yeeld them that dutie which belongs vnto them? But especially, were it [...] [Page 332]dutie for them, which he required them to do for him. Now he desires of God to confirme them in euery good worke; Vers. 21 or that he would fit, perfect, and accomplish: for the Greek word which he vseth emports so much. Whence we gather, that we shall be vnfit to do good, till such time as God hath fashioned and framed vs thereunto: as also that we cannot long continue to doe good, vnlesse he confirme and streng­then vs. For perseuerance is a particular gift of God. Also there is no doubt, but as there shined excellent gifts of the Spirit in them (as we haue seene) so the Apostle here wish­eth vnto them, not onely the first grace by which they be­gan; but also as a further polishing thereof, euen that which might bring them to perfection. A definition of good workes. Besides, he here sets down consequently the definition of good workes, when hee ap­points the will of God for the rule of them. For by this meanes he signifies that wee ought to hold none other for good workes, than those which are to be referred to the will of God: as also S. Paul sheweth, Rom. 12.2. and in many other places. Let vs remember then that this is the perfe­ction of a good and holy life, when the same is squared to his obedience.

The member which by and followeth, serues for an in­terpretation, Doing (saith he) in you, that which is pleasing in his sight. He had spoken of the will of God which is reuea­led in the law: now hee shewes that it is in vaine to bring ought vnto God which he hath not commanded: because he esteemes more of his owne ordinances, than of all good intents and inuentions of the world. Where he saith, by Ie­sus Christ, it may bee expounded two waies, that is to wit, Doing by Iesus Christ, or, that which is acceptable by Iesus Christ. Both senses agree very well. For wee know that the spirit of regeneration and all other graces are conferred vn­to vs by the meanes of Iesus Christ. Moreouer it is certaine, that seeing the best things which come from vs are not fully perfect; therefore nothing we doe can be acceptable vnto God without the pardon of sinne, the which we ob­taine by Christ. Thus it comes to passe that our workes doe [Page 333]giue a good and sweete sauour before God, Our vvorkes giue a sweete sauour before God, when they are filled with the odours of Christs grace. when they are filled with the odour of the grace of Christ: whereas other­wise they stinke and are abominable. I like well then that this be extended to both members. As touching the con­clusion of his prayer, To whom be glorie, for euer and euer, I am content to referre it vnto Iesus Christ. Now in as much as hee attributes that here vnto Christ which belongs to God onely, he hereby giues a cleere testimonie of Christ his Diuinitie. Although if any be pleased to interpret it of the Father, I will not contend. Yet I rather take the other, be­cause it is lesse constrained.

Who hath brought againe from the dead.] Vers. 20 This Epithite was added for a confirmation. The 20. verse is expounded here. For he signifies that God is then rightly called vpon of vs, to bring vs to perfection: when wee know his power in the resurrection of Christ, and when we acknowledge Christ for our shepheard. In a word, he would haue vs to fixe our eyes vpon Christ, to the end we might conceiue good hope of Gods helpe and assistance. The end of Christs resur­rection. For Christ is therfore risen againe from the dead, to the end that by this very power of God we might be renewed vnto eternall life: and he is the great shepheard of all: to the end he may defend and keep the sheepe which God hath com­mitted vnto him.

Whereas others translate, By his blood: there is properly in the text of the Apostle, In his blood: but because the letter beth, which in Hebrew signifies, in, is also taken for with: I thinke it better to take it here in the latter sense. For it seems to me, that the Apostles meaning is, that Christ is so risen a­gaine frō the dead, that yet notwithstanding his death is not abolished, but holds his perpetuall vigor. As if he had said, God hath raised vp his Son, but in such wise, that the blood which he once shed in his death to confirme the eternal co­uenant, ceaseth not still to haue his efficacie, euen now after his resurrection, yea and brings forth his fruit, as if it alwaies flowed out.

I beseech you also brethren, &c.] Vers. 22 Some take it as though he required that audience should be giuen him: but I take it o­therwise. [Page 334]For in my iudgement, his meaning is to say, that he hath written to them in fewe words, or breifly; to the ende it might not seeme he would any way diminish the ordinarie manner of teaching in the Church: notwithstanding hee speakes principally of exhortations wherein himselfe had beene more breife. Let vs learne then that the Scripture is not giuen vs to the ende the liuely voice of the Pastors should cease amongst vs, or that it should be irkesome vnto vs, although euen the words of exhortation do often sound in our eares, & shall be oftē reiterated. For the Spirit of God hath so tempered and compassed the writings which hee shewed to the Prophets and Apostles, that he meant not to derogate any thing at all from the order which himselfe hath instituted.

Now his order is this; that daiely exhortations should be heard in the Church, from the mouthes of the Pastors. Per­aduenture also he doth of purpose recommend the word of exhortation vnto them: because that men as they are natu­rally couetous to learne, so they had rather alwaies bee taught some new thing, than to be admonished of known things, and such as haue beene often heard. Adde also, that in as much as they are giuen to flatter themselues, and to let loose the raines to their carelesnesse; they will hardly suffer themselues without griefe and vnwillingnesse to be sharply touched, and chastised.

Know that our brother Timotheus, Verse. 23 &c.] Because the termi­nation of the Greeke word is ambiguous, we may translate you know, or, know yee; and this latter reading I take to be the better; although I reiect not the first. For it is very likely that he giues the Iewes to vnderstand, beeing beyond the sea; of that which yet they knew not. Moreouer, if so be this Timo­theus be that notable companiō of S. Paul (which I willing­ly receiue) it is very likely that either S. Luke, or Clement is the author of this Epistle. S. Paul surely was woont rather to call him his sonne. Besides, that which he immediately adds, agreeth not to the person of S. Paul. For it appeares that he which wrote this Epistle was at libertie, and not impriso­ned; [Page 335]and besides, that hee was rather somewhere els than at Rome: yea and it is very likely, that he had beene in many of the cities of this countrie, and was readie to passe the sea. Now all these things might come to passe either to S. Luke, or to Clement after S. Pauls death.

Salute all them, &c.] Vers. 24 Seeing he writes this Epistle in com­mon to all the Hebrews, it is a wonder why he requires that they should by name salute some of them, as if they were separated from the rest. But in my iudgement, he directs this salutation particularly to the Leaders, by way of giuing ho­nour vnto them, to the ende he might grow into acquain­tance with them, and might the more mildly enduce them with good consent to entertaine the doctrine. When he ads, And to all the Saints: Either he meanes the faithfull which were of the Gentiles, to the ende that both Iewes and Gentiles might learne to nourish and entertaine a godly v­nion together: or he aimes at this, to wit, that they which should receiue this Epistle first, should communicate the same vnto others.

Because the 25. verse hath beene expounded in the ende of the other Epistles, therefore it is omitted here. Notwith­standing, for their sakes, who it may be, want his other com­mentaries, I haue thought good breifly to supply that lacke out of his commentarie vpon the Epistle to the Romans, Chap. 16. ver. 20.

Grace be with you all.] This is a praier, Vers. 25 wherein he wisheth that they may feele the fruit, and inioy al those good things which are purchased for vs by Christ.

Immortall glorie, be to our God, the Father of our Lord Iesus Christ, Amen.

FINIS.

A TABLE DIRE­CTING THE READER TO some principall matters contained in this Commen­tarie vpon the Hebrewes: the first number points to the Chapter: the second to the verse of the Chapter.

A
Abacuck.
  • A Text of Abacuck ex­pounded. chap. 10. vers. 37.
Abraham.
  • Faith was Abrahams cheifest vertue. 11.17.
  • The triall of Abrahams faith. 11.19.
Afflictions.
  • Afflictions exempt vs not out of the nūber of Gods children. 5.7.
  • Afflictions soueraigne me­dicines to cure our cor­ruptions. 12.4.
  • The ende God hath in affli­cting vs. 12.6.
  • Why the wicked receiue no benefit by afflictiōs. 12.6.
  • Afflictions cannot hurt vs, and why. 12.6.
  • How we may know when af­flictions are tokens of Gods loue to vs. 12.6.
Angels.
  • Those that will haue the protection of Angels, must looke that them­selues bee members of Christ. 1.14.
  • Angels no lawfull media­tors. 7.26.
Apostasie.
Great difference betweene falling into some par­ticular sinne; and a finall Apostasie. 6.4. See chap. 10.26.
B
Beginning.
  • It is not enough to make good beginnings onely. 34. See chap. 6.1.
Blood.
  • The blood of beasts purified Sacramentally; Christs blood really. 9.13.
  • Nothing we doe acceptable before God, till wee bee purged by the blood of Christ. 9.14.
  • God cannot bee sought nor serued of vs, till faith ap­prehend Christs blood. 9.19.
  • Faith must see the promises [Page]written in our hearts with the blood of Christ. 9.20.
  • The friuolous distinction of the Papists betweene a bloodie and vnbloodie sacrifice. 9.26.
Bodie.
  • Christs bodie is the temple in which his father dwels. 9.11.
Brethren.
  • Christ doth vs no small ho­nour in calling vs his bre­thren. 2.11.
  • A commendable thing for the Saints to call one ano­ther by the name of bro­ther. 13.2
C
Catechisme.
  • The points of Catechisme v­sed in the Primitiue Church. 6.1.
Call.
  • Hee will neuer call vpon God in trueth, that hath not a taste of his goodnes. 11.6.
Calling.
  • The calling of the faithfull only secured vnder Christs wings. 3.1.
  • Christ would not runne be­fore he had receiued a cal­ling. 5.4.
Canaan.
  • Why the Iewes desired so much to enter into the land of Canaan. 4.8.
Cause.
  • No other cause of our salua­tion but Gods free mer­cie. 6.10.
  • The cause of errours and superstitiōs in the church. 13.9.
Christ.
  • All our right to the creatures consists in Christ. 2.5.
  • Christ must not be the lesse esteemed because he wil­lingly abased himselfe. 2.10.
  • Christ would not runne be­fore he was sent. 5.4.
  • Christ stroue with the curse of God, and with hell it selfe, and ouercame them. 5.7.
  • Christ with all that he hath is ours. 7.25.
  • Christ alone is sufficient to fulfil whatsoeuer God re­quires. 10.10.
  • He shall neuer finde God, to whom the man Christ is not the way. 10.19.
  • Faith must content it selfe in Christ alone. 11.6.
  • Christ allowes no souldiers in his battels that loue their ease. 12.4.
  • The crie of Christs blood al­waies heard. 12.24.
Church.
  • Church gouernment must be squared according to Gods commandement. 5.4.
  • Gods care is alwaies alike to his Church. 11.35.
Ciuill.
  • To teach ciuill righteousnes without faith: is a pro­phane philosophie. 6.11.
Comming of Christ.
  • The neerer Christs comming approacheth, the more should wee indeauour to bring home the straied sheepe. 10.25.
Conscience.
  • Peace of conscience can ne­uer be highly esteemed of till we know the disquiet­nes thereof. 7.2.
Conuersion.
  • The conuerted ought to pro­cure the conuersion of o­thers. 10.24.
Couetousnesse.
  • Distrust, the roote of coue­tousnesse. 13.5.
Creatures.
  • None of the creatures apper­taine vnto vs, till we ap­pertaine vnto God. 2.5.
  • All the right wee haue to the creatures is in Christ. 2.5.
  • Curious questions are to be auoided. 11.5.
Crosse. See 5.8.
  • Christ was consecrated into his office of Priesthood by the crosse. 5.8.
  • Hee that flies the crosse re­nounceth his childes part. 12.7. See 12.12.
D
Death.
  • Death must needes be terri­ble to as many as looke vpon it out of Christ. 2.15.
  • Hee hath profited but little that hath not learned to despise death. 2.15.
  • Two things to be considered in Christs death. 8.4.
  • Death is to be chosen aboue life if it cannot bee kept without forsaking of god. 11.35.
Diuell.
  • The Diuels power weakened and limited. 2.14.
Disobedience.
  • Nothing so hurtfull as diso­bedience. 12.9.
Distrust.
  • Distrust must not bee nouri­shed. 11.11.
Doubt.
It is a sinne to doubt of that which God hath promi­sed. 6.11.
E
Elect.
  • It is profitable the elect [Page]should sometimes bee sharply reprooued. 6.9.
End.
  • What end we ought to haue in all our thoughts and deliberations.
Euer.
  • How farre this word Euer is to be extended. 7.17.
Exile.
  • A comfort for the exiled. 11.38.
  • A mediatation for the exiled. 13.14.
F
Falles.
  • Falles generall and particu­lar. 6.4.
Faith.
  • Faith giues the word entrāce in respect of vs. 5.2.
  • Two effects of faith. 3.6.
  • Faith and charitie must goe together. 6.11.
  • Great difference betweene faith and a generall appre­hension. 6.11.
  • Faith must passe beyond all externall shadows to rest it selfe vpon Christ alone. 6.19.
  • Faith the foundation of an holy life. 10.35.
  • No life without faith. 10.38.
  • The necessitie of faith. 10.38.
  • Faith was the onely band whereby the Patriarkes were knit vnto God. 11.2.
  • Faith must content it selfe with Christ alone. 11.6.
  • The nature of faith. 11.7.
  • The obiect of faith. 11.7.
  • How faith is said to bee the cause of feare. 11.7.
  • Why the Gospell is called the word of faith. 11.7.
  • Faith the mother of obedi­ence. 11.7.
  • Faith the roote and cause of righteousnes. 11.7.
  • A principle of faith. 11.8.
  • Two trials of faith. 11.8.
  • Faith commended, though it were mingled with di­strust. 11.11.
  • That is the true faith which rests it selfe vpon the pro­mises. 11.11.
  • When faith respects the pro­mise, and when it respects the recompence of re­ward. 11.26.
Fathers.
  • How farre the example of our fathers is to be follow­ed. 3.8. See chap. 11.13.
Feare.
  • Feare ought not to take away the assurance of faith. 4.1.
  • How faith is said to bee the cause of feare. 11.7.
  • Feare is too ingenious in see­king starting holes. 12.13.
Felicitie.
We must go out of our selues to attaine true felicitie. 4.10.
Fight.
  • A double fight of the faith­full. 12.4.
Free-will.
We will freely: but it is to do euill.
G
Glorie.
  • What it is to giue glorie to God. 6.15.
  • To serue to Gods glorie is the onely ende of our life. 11.6.
God.
  • God is neuer angrie without cause. 3.17.
  • God is the father of the soule as well as of the bodie. 12.9.
  • God cares for vs euen whilst he afflicts vs. 12.12.
Good.
  • Man his soueraigne good. 4.10.
Gospell.
  • Hee that reiects the Gospell reiects the saluation of God. 2.3.
  • Christ the author of the Go­spel. 2.12.
  • Why the Gospel is called the word of faith. 11.7.
H
Haste.
  • We neuer think God makes haste enough: when wee waite for his deliuerance.
Halting.
  • We must take heede of hal­ting in Gods matters be­time. 12.13.
Hearing.
  • Hearing profits not, vnlesse faith bee ioyned with it. 4.2.
Hearts.
  • None can soften our hard hearts but God. 3.8.
Hillarie.
  • A saying of Hillarie. 11.38.
  • Hisichius. 8.5.
Hisop.
  • The vertue of Hisop. 9.21.
Holy Ghost.
  • Foure effects which the Ho­ly Ghost workes in vs. 10.29. See chap. 8.10.
Hope.
  • Hope the constancie of faith. 3.6.
  • Hope findes no footing on earth. 6.19.
  • Hope springs out of faith. 10.23.
Hospitalitie.
  • Hospitalitie growne out of vse. 13.2.
Humilitie.
God allowes no seruice vn­lesse it be ioyned with hu­militie. 12.28.
I
Illumination.
  • It is the worke of the Holy Ghost to illuminate our vnderstandings. 8.10.
Imperfections.
  • Imperfections remaine in the best. 11.32.
Infidelitie.
  • No darkenes like infidelitie. 4.12.
  • Infidelitie onely hinders o­bedience. 11.7.
K
Kingdome.
  • Christs kingdome shal neuer bee vanquished though it be daily assaulted. 1.13.
Knowledge.
  • All knowledge that is sepa­rate from the knowledge of Christ is but meere va­nitie. 13.8.
  • Hee is a man of knowledge that knowes how much he wants. 5.12.
L
  • Last day. See 10.25.
Law.
  • In what sense the word law is to be taken. 7.12.
  • Their consciences can neuer be at quiet that rest only in the doctrine of the law. 9.15.
  • They profit il by the law that are not drawne thereby to faith. 11.24.
  • Laying on of hands. chap. 6.2.
Loue.
  • He that wil exercise himselfe in the duties of loue must prepare himselfe to a life ful of labour. 6.10.
  • Loue extends her liberalitie to all, &c. 6.10.
  • It is an hard matter to pre­serue loue. 10.24.
  • Nothing sooner lost than loue. 13.1.
  • The true badge of loue. 13.16.
M
Marriage.
  • Mariage lawfull for all sorts. 13.4.
Masse.
  • Foure points proouing the Masse to bee full of sacri­ledge. 10.18.
Meates.
  • Obseruation of meates be­longs nothing to the sub­stance of our saluation. 13.9.
Mediator.
  • No Saint or Angel a fit Me­diator and why. 8.3.
Merit.
  • Reward is not giuen vnto workes vpon any merit. 6.10.
  • Merit of workes. 11.6.
Moses.
  • The commendation of Mo­ses faith. 11.25.
  • Moses faith oft mingled with the imperfections of the flesh. 11.27.
N
  • Nature of faith. 11.27.
Neglect.
  • After a long neglect of holy duties followes an aliena­tion of affections. 6.4.
Noah.
  • In what sense Noah is said to condemne the world. 11.7.
Nouatus.
The error of Nouatus confu­ted. chap. 6.4.10.26.
O
Obedience.
  • Our obedience chiefly ap­peares in the deniall of our selues. 5.8.
Obiection.
  • An obiection of the Papists answered, wherein they say they offer not another sacrifice, &c. 10.2.
Offer.
  • None fit to offer Christ but himselfe. 10.18.
Offices.
  • Two offices of Christ. 3.1.
Opportunitie.
  • It is dangerous to neglect opportunitie. 3.13.
Oath.
It is lawful to take an oath. 6.16.
P
Pastor.
  • The care of a good Pastor. 4.1.
  • We must learne to discerne true Pastors from false. 13.17.
Pardon.
  • Who they be that are exclu­ded from hope of pardon. 6.4.
  • Patriarkes. chap. 11.13.
Patience.
  • The necessitie of patience. 10.36.
Peace.
  • We haue peace both in life and in death, &c. 2.15.
  • In what sense the Hebrewes vsually take this word Peace. 7.2.
  • Wee must striue to keepe peace with men, &c. 12.14
  • We shall neuer keepe peace except wee take paines to pursue it. 12.14.
Person.
  • A mans person must bee ex­cepted, &c. 11.4.
Perseuerance.
  • Perseuerance in well doing is a vertue thin sowen. 6.10.
Petitions.
  • God often grants our petiti­ons [Page]when he seems to de­nie them. 5.7.
  • Plerophoria. 6.11.
Poore.
  • When we inuite the poore to our houses, in them wee giue entertainment to Christ. 13.2.
Praier.
  • Christs praier heard though he suffered death. 5.7.
  • Praier ought to bee feruent. 5.7.
  • How to pray with fruit. 8.3.
Prayers.
  • All praiers that depend not on Christs intercession are reiected. 7.26.
Preaching.
  • Preaching must not be con­temned, and why. 4.12. see 4.2.
  • Preaching hath a double vse.
Pride.
  • The end of threatnings is to beate downe the pride of the flesh, &c. 6.5.
Promise.
  • No faith without a promise. 4.2.
  • Gods promise, the onely ob­iect of faith. 10.23.
Promises.
  • That is the true saith which heares God speake and rests vpon the promises. 11.11.
  • The promises profit vs no­thing, &c. 9.20.
R
Reconciliation.
  • No other meane to procure Reconciliation but the blood of Christ. 9.22.
Religion.
  • There is no religion but where the truth beares the sway. 11.6.
  • No religion without sanctifi­cation. 12.16.
Repentance.
  • Fearefull euents of late re­pentance. 12.17.
Reprobates.
  • The hearts of the Reprobates compared to the Anuill. 4.12.
Resurrection.
  • The end of Christs resurrecti­on. 13.20.
Reward.
  • Reward impugnes not the free imputation of righte­ousnesse. 10.35.
  • When faith is said to respect reward. 11.26.
Rodde.
The rodde had neede to bee alwaies tied to our backs. 12.7.
S
Sacrament.
  • The blood of beasts purged sacramentally. 9.13.
  • The word and Sacrament [Page]must goe together. 9.20.
  • The Exposition of the word, the life and soule of the sa­crament. 9.20.
Sacrifice.
  • Christs sacrifice absolutely perfect. 7.27. See 9.14.
  • Christs sacrifice absolutely perfect from the begin­ning. 9.26.
  • Thankfulnesse Gods cheifest sacrifice. 13.15.
  • No sacrifice acceptable vnto God but in Christ. 13.15.
  • See chap. 11.4.
  • Three kinds of sacrifices. 13.16.
Saluation.
  • The Iewes and Gentiles haue but one meanes of saluati­on, as touching the sub­stance. 10.1.
Sanctuarie.
  • The Sanctuarie earthly, and how. 9.1.
Scripture.
  • What marke wee must aime at, if we meane to profit in the Scriptures. 13.9.
Seeke.
  • The meanes how to seeke God. 11.6.
Shadowes.
  • Wee haue no such neede of shadows now as the Iews had. 4.8.
Schisme.
  • The chiefe cause of all Schis­mes. 10.25.
Similitude.
  • A similitude setting forth the difference betweene the law and the Gospel. 10.1.
Sinne.
  • How sinne is said to be de­stroyed. 9.26.
Sorrowe.
  • The taste of heuenly riches takes away the sorrow for losse of the earthly. 10.34.
Soules.
  • God is the father as well of the soule as the bodie. 12.9.
  • The soules of the faithfull liue with God after they be departed hence. 12.23.
Strangers.
No inheritance for vs in hea­uen, vnlesse we count our selues strangers on earth. 11.16.
T
Temptations.
  • What wee are to doe in spiri­tuall temptations. 5.7.
Tempt.
  • How God is said to tempt. 11.17.
Throne.
  • The throne of God is hangd all ouer with grace. 4.16.
Tithes.
  • Causes why tithes were paid [Page]Leui. 7.4.
Truth.
Many seeme friends to the trueth, but few will suffer for it. 12.12.
V
Vaile.
  • No vaile hinders our accesse to God now, if we beleeue in Christ. 7.25.
Vncleane.
The remedie that takes away our vncleanenes is in our flesh. 2.11.
Vnitie.
A meanes to preserue vnitie. 10.24.
W
Witnesses.
  • None ought to bee condem­ned without witnesses. 10.28.
Women.
  • Women haue interest in e­ternall life as well as men. 11.
Word.
  • The word preached the po­wer of God, &c. 4.2.
  • Gods word is not heard in it selfe. 5.11.
  • The word must goe with the sacrament. 9.20.
  • The word the life of the sa­crament. 9.20.
  • No rule of faith but Gods word. 11.4.
Worlds.
  • Two worlds. 2.6.
  • The cause why the things of this world are in such high account with vs. 12.16.
Works.
  • A definition of good works. 13.21.
  • Our workes become sweet in Gods sight, when they are filled with the odours of Christ. 12.21.
  • No workes in account with God, but those that pro­ceed from a righteous mā. 11.4.
Worship.
Wee must not goe an haires breadth from Gods com­mandement in things per­taining to his worshippe. 8.5.
Zeale.
An vndiscreete zeale is no lesse hurtfull, than a fain­ting slothfulnes.

ERRATA.

Pag. 78. lin 9. read fleshly. p 84. l. 12. r. confession. p. 133. l. 35. r. shoul­ders p. 135. l. 4. r. thus. p. 172. l 22. r. that the grace. p. 195. l. 13. r. true San­ctuarie. p. 207. l. 16. r. this word booke. p. 236. l. 10 put out for. p. 239. l. 8. r. subsistence p. 257. l. 8. put out, the p. 263. l. 36. r. recited p 271. l. 31. r. Saint Paul. p. 291. l. 11. put out, no. p. 320. for Col. 3. r. Col. 2.

This keyboarded and encoded edition of the work described above is co-owned by the institutions providing financial support to the Text Creation Partnership. Searching, reading, printing, or downloading EEBO-TCP texts is reserved for the authorized users of these project partner institutions. Permission must be granted for subsequent distribution, in print or electronically, of this EEBO-TCP Phase II text, in whole or in part.